OUfO L?330 UL53 y^^\^cnSlfi.-^^ CORNELL UNIVERSITY LIBRARY 3 1924 067 113 823 Cornell University Library The original of tiiis book is in tine Cornell University Library. There are no known copyright restrictions in the United States on the use of the text. http://www.archive.org/details/cu31924067113823 In compliance with current copyright law, Cornell University Library produced this replacement volume on paper that meets the ANSI Standard Z39.'^8-198'V to replace the irreparably deteriorated original. 1993 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH, AND OTHER PUBLIC DOCUMENTS, ILLUSTRATIVE OF THE HISTORY OF THE BAPTIST CHUECHES OF ENGLAND IN THE 17th CENTUEY. EDITED FOR m)t i^an^eiJj HuoUps; S>otin^, EDWARD BEAN UNDERHILL. LONDON : FEINTED FOB THE SOCIBTT, BT HADDON, BROTHERS, AND CO., CASTLE STREET, FINSBURY. M.PCCC.UV CONTENTS. Introductory Notice ... . r Confession of Amsterdam, 1611 ... 1 Confession of Seven Cliurches, 1646 . . .11 An Appendix, to a Confession of Faith, 1646 . . 49 Confession of Somersets, 1656 . . . .74 London Confession, 1660 . ... 107 An Orthodox Creed, 1678 . . . .121 Confession of Assembly, 1688 .... 169 The Baptist Catechism .... 247 Public Doeuments, illustrative of the History of the Baptist Churches of England, 1647—1661 . . 271 A Declaration by Congregational Societies in and about the City of London, 1647 . . , . .273 The humble Petition and Eepresentation of several Churches of Grod in London, commonly (though falsely) called Anabaptists, 1649 . ... 288 Heart-Bleedings for Professors' Abominations, 1650 . 293 Letter from Mr. Thomas Patient to the Lord Lieutenant of Ireland . . .... 311 Letter of Colonel Harrison to the Lord General CromweU 315 Letter of Mr. Peter Chamberlen to the Lord Greneral Cromwell . . . . . . .318 Letter from the People of Bedfordshire to the Lord General CromweU, and the Council of the Army . . . 320 Letter from Mr. Kiffin and others .... 322 h 2 IV CONTENTS. The liiimble Eepreseutatiou aud Viudicatioii of many of the Messengers, Elders, and Brethren, belonging to several of the Baptized Churches in this Nation, of and concerning their opinions and resolutions touc hin g the Civil Grovemment of these Nations, and of their Deport- ment under the same ... - 327 Address from the Baptist Churches irt Northumberland, Ac, to the Lord Protector . . • ■ 331 Address of the Anabaptist Ministers in London to the Lord Protector ....... 335 Address of the Baptized Christians in Dublin to the Lord Protector . . . . . . .339 The Humble Apology of some commonly called Anabaptists in behalf of themselves and others of the same judgment ■with them ...... 343 The Second humble Address of those who are called Ana- baptists, in the County of Liucoki. Presented to His Majesty, Charles the Second, King of England, Scotland, Erance, and Ireland, &c. ..... 353 To the King of these Nations, the humble Representation of several Societies, commonly called by the name of Ana- baptists, vfhere in short they declare their Innocency, Sufferings, Desires, and Eesolutions . . . 357 INTRODUCTORY NOTICE. The contents of the present volume embrace, first, a col- lection of the various Confessions of Faith, published by the English baptists during the 17 th century ;' a Catechism prepared and published under the direction of the Assembly in 1689 ; and, lastly, a collection of documents of public and historical interest ; the whole throwing light on the religious sentiments of the denomination, and its political relations during the stormy period of the Commonwealth. The Confessions, while generally agreeing in matters of chief theological concernment and church polity, express the opinions of the two parties into which the baptists were divided, and now known as General and Particular Baptists. From the days of Augustine and Pelagius, the church of Christ has had within itself diversities of senti- ment on the doctrines of election, the extent of Christ's death, effectual grace, and the perseverance of the saints. These have reproduced themselves in every age and in every comniunity, and were perhaps never more warmly contested than in tbe puritan period of English history. They then received, according to the view taken, the desiscnations of Calvinism and Arminianism, which have ever since been attached to them. And though not strictly applicable in all the cases in which they are used, yet are they convenient terms to intimate the class of opinions to which any particular theological sentiment belongs. ■ ' [With tlie exception of the So- heads of theology than a Confession mersetshireConfessionof 1691. This of Faith. It may be seen in Crosby, was little known by the churches, iii. 259 ; iv. App. No. 1.] and is rather a treatise on various Yl INTEODUCTOUY NOTICE. To the Arminian, or General baptist class, belong the Confessions of 1611, 1660, and 1678. To the Calvinist, or Particular baptist class, belong the Confessions of 1646, 1656, and 1688. The confessions of this volume were not creeds, com- pulsorily imposed on the members or churches of the baptist body. Speaking strictly tbey were apologies, taking the form of confessions, or creeds, as the most con- venient way of informing adversaries of the matter of their faith. No one was required or bound to subscribe to them, and if adopted by any church as the expression of its sentiments, all others were left free, and even a con- siderable latitude of judgment allowed in the bosom of the church itself. They originated in the false accusations, the calumnies, and misrepresentations of foes ; they were not framed to procure unity among the churches that ac- cepted them. They sought to reflect the existing harmony of sentiment, and the scriptural orthodoxy of the communi- ties whose pastors signed them ; they left the phantom of uniformity to the unavailing search of an establishment. The circumstances under which the refugees in Holland, from the tyranny of a state church, published the Con- fession of 1611, are suflSciently detailed in the volume of Tracts on Liberty of Conscience." It would seem probable that it was the joint composition of Mr. Smyth and Mr. Helwisse, perhaps of Mr. Helwisse alone ; for in the dedication of a small work published the same year,^ he says : " Whereas we formerly, in a little treatise entitled, a Declaration of Faith of English people remaining at Amsterdam, have in the fifth article in short set down our faith of election and reprobation, concerning salvation and 2 [Hanserd Knollys' Society, pp. the caiise of any man's ain or oon- 90, 91, 179.] demuation, &o., 1611. 12nio. pp. ' [A Proof that God's decree is not 26.] INTRODBCTOUY NOTICE. Vll condemnation ; there having been some private opposition since we writ it ;" — and then proceeds to the special subject of the work before him. This would seem to show that at least Mr. Helwisse had a principal hand in the preparation of the Confession. The reprint in this volume is taken from Crosby's valu- able work.* The editor has failed to discover the original printed copy ; but a manuscript of it exists in the archives of the Mennonite church in Amsterdam, to which the original subscriptions are appended. A fac-simile of the subscriptions, before the editor, begins thus: "We sub- scribe to the truth of these articles, desiring further instruction." Forty-two names follow, and among them those of John Smyth, and of Mary Smyth his wife. Helwisse's name is not there ; and for some unexplained reason, several of the names are obliterated with a line through them. This is the case with the signature of John Smyth. It may be that the obliteration was done on his decease, which seems to have occurred late in 1611 or early in 1612. The Confession of 1646 was first published in the year 1644. The rapid growth of baptists at this time called forth every weapon of offence against them. No heresy was too gross to attribute to them, no practice too wicked not to find assertors that it existed amongst them. One writer, who seeks in the history of the German Anabap- tists an armoury of crimes by which to assail them, thus sums up their offences : " I expect some will say with John of Leyden, that if the word of God were lost, they might soon supply it with another. . . . That regenerate men cannot sin is the very doctrine of the anabaptists ; to^ * [Vol. ii. App. No. 1. Crosby num- Confession consists, therefore, of bers the last two articles 26 and 27; only twenty-six articles.] but does not give an article 25. The inu INTRODUCTORY NOTICE. take the communion where there is a profane person, is to take with his profaneness; that the Lords prayer was never taught to be said, &c. ; that a liberty of prophesying must be allowed ; that distinction of parishes is anti-chris- tian ; that ministers of God's word should rule both the spiritual and temporal ; that all human laws must be abolished, and all policies of states must be taken out of the word of God, and all diiferences judged out of the word of God only: — all these are scions of that stock of ana- baptism that was transplanted out of Holland in the year 1535, when two ships, laden with anabaptists, fled into England, after they had missed the enterprise of Am- sterdam." " To these doctrines you may join their practice. The seditious pamphlets, the tumultuous rising of rude mul- titudes threatening blood and destruction ; the preaching of the cobblers, felt-makers, tailors, grooms, and women ; the choosing of any place for God's service but the church; the night-meetings of naked men and women : the licen- tiousness of spiritual marriages without any legal form: these things if they be not looked into, will brino- us in time to community of wives, community of goods, and destruction of all."' Such were the misrepresentations and calumnies this Confession was intended to deny and refute. That we should find them reiterated in the pages of a Featly and an Edwards is no surprise; but the respectable Baillie, hoodwinked by prejudice and presbyterian exclusiveness, cannot be convinced of their wrongfulness, and in the very teeth of the Confession affirms that the baptists of the Commonwealth must be no better than their so-called predecessors. They are not to be believed : for, says he, ' [See Martyrology. Vol. i. p. 154.] tists of High and Low Germany. ' [A Short Histoi-yof the Anabap- Loudon, 1C42, 4to. pp. 55, 56.1 TNTRODUCTORY NOTICE. IX " The Confession of Faith which the other year seven of their congregations did put forth, and of late again in a second corrected edition have set out with a bold preface to both the houses of parliament, may no more be taken for the measure of their faith than that Confession which their elder brethren in Holland^ did print not long ago in the name of all their company." And in a note he adds : " The London Anabaptists' Confession is such an one as I believe thousands of our new anabaptists will be far from owning, as any man may be able to say without a spirit of divination, knowing that their usual and received doctrines do much more agree with the anabaptists in Germany, than with that handful who made this Confession."* Baillle next proceeds in a special chapter to describe the tenets of the anabaptists of England ; not from their pub- lished and united Confessions, or their acknowledged writ- ings, but from the pages of their antagonists. Their spirit, he says, is clearly devilish. The fair profession of many English anabaptists is not to be trusted. The Confession is a very imperfect and ambiguous declaration of their judgment. Every anabaptist is at least a rigid separatist. They ■put all church power in the hands of the people. Any of their gifted members may preach ; but not in a steeple- house. Tithes are unlawful, and their preachers must work with their own hands and riot go In black clothes. They celebrate the Lord's supper in inns. They deny all power to magistrates in anything that concerns religion. And, above all, they are Injurious to the Scots. That Baillie's patriotism cannot but resent.9 StiU there can be no doubt from the rapid increase of ' [The Independents, in a work Antinomy, Familisme, &c. By Ro- entitled, "An Apologetical Narra- bert Baillie, London, 1C47, 4to. pp. tion," -&c., 1643, 4to.] 18, 28.] ° [Anataptisme the True Foun- ' [Ibid. pp. 47 — 59.] taine of Independency, Brownism, X INTRODUCTORY NOTICE. baptist churches, and the pubUc employment of many baptists in the array and offices of government, that this apology satisfied reasonable men, and removed much pre- judice. Two more editions followed, in 1651 and 1652, and an edition was also printed at Leith in 1653, by a small company of baptists, who appear to have been attached to the army then in Scotland.'^ Considerable alterations were made in the second edition, the most important of which are indicated in the notes. The general tendency of the alterations is to modify some- what the very marked Calvinism of the first edition. To the last two editions a small piece, published in 1650, was attached, entitled, " Heart Bleedings for Professors' Abo- minations,'' &c., which will be found in a subsequent part of the volume. Following this Confession are some additional and ex- planatory articles, published by Mr. Benjamin Cox, M.A. He was one of the subscribers to the second edition, and was probably employed in its revision. He was a graduate of Oxford University, and for some time after he took orders a very zealous churchman in Devonshire. When episcopacy was laid aside he exercised his ministry in Bedford. In 1 643, he was engaged in a public discussion at Coventry, with Richard Baxter, on the subject of baptism. After living for some time in Coventry, as pastor of a newly formed baptist church, he removed to London.^ No other reasons than those he has himself given, are known as to the cause of his publishing the piece now for the first time reprinted. About the year 1650, a general desire sprang up amongst the baptist churches for greater union. The movement appears to haye begun with an earnest letter from the ' [See Hexham Church Records.] [Brook's Lives of the PuritanB, iii. 417-] INTRODUCTORY NOTICE. XI churches in Ireland, addressed to their brethren in London. It was freely circulated, and gave rise to visits and corre- spondence throughout the country. An association, or general assembly, of the churches in Somersetshire and the adjacent counties, was in consequence formed about the year 1653, of which several meetings were held in fol- lowing years. The records which remain, commence with a meeting at Wells, on the 8th and 9th November, 1653, and close with a meeting at Tiverton, on the 15 th and 16th November, 1657. At a meeting held at Bridgewater, in November 1656, the following question was put for consideration : — " What is the saint's duty towards the magistrate at this day, in this nation?" The response was in these terms : — " We refer those concerned herein, for answer to the forty-fourth article of the confession of the faith of the churches in these parts." It is therefore, probable, that the confession was adopted at a meeting of the associated churches at Wells, in the previous month of April. From the manner in which the name of Thomas Collier is appended, it would seem to be the production of his pen. In the year 1655, Mr. CoUier had been ordained to the " Office of General Superintendent and Messenger to all the Associated Churches."^ In this capacity, many of the circular letters, and the proceedings of the Association, were signed and published by him.* The next Confession, that of the year 1660, contains in brief space the views of our general baptist brethren. Forbidden to assemble for the worship of God, their dwell- ings unjustly invaded by the emissaries of the law, and ob- taining no redress from the local authorities, they resolved ' [Brief History of the Western * [Imperfect "copies of these inter- Association, by J. G. Fuller. 8vo. esting documeuta are in the Library 1823. p. 9.] of the Baptist Academy, Bristol.], XH INTRODTJCTOllY NOTTCE. to appeal to the king, Charles II., who but a few months before, in order to obtain the crown, had promised liberty of worship to all. " Accordingly, they drew up a narra- tive of their sufferings in an address to his Majesty; which by the interest of an honourable member of parliament, their messengers obtained an opportunity of delivering into the hands of Charles II., on July 26th, 1660."« Mr. Grantham and Mr. Joseph Wright were the messengers ; the one a young man, scarce twenty-six years of age, but an active evangelist in Lincolnshire ; the other, pastor of the church at Westby. At the same time, the Confes- sion was presented to the sovereign, which had been com- posed in the spring of the year. It has often been reprinted since, in various forms, under the sanction of general assemblies and associations. In his important work, " Christianismus Primitivus," Mr. Grantham has himself reprinted it, adding thereto, " Explanatory Supplements, and the testimony of many of the ancient writers of Chris- tianity, to show that though the composition of these articles be new, yet the doctrine contained therein is truly ancient, being witnessed both by the holy scriptures and later writers of Christianity."^ Another Confession proceeded from the same body, in 1 678, conveying the sentiments of the general baptists in Bucldnghamshire, Oxfordshire, and the parts adjacent. It was signed by fifty-four messengers, elders, and bre- thren, and was an attempt to " unite and confirm all true protestants in the fundamental articles of the Christian Teligion, against the errors and heresies of the church of Rome." This Confession is thus characterized by the historian of the general baptists: — " The evident design of the compilers » [Taylor's Hist, of General Baptists, i. 186, 360.] ' [Book U. pp. 61, 62.] INTRODUCTORY NOTICE. Xlll of these articles appears to have been to approximate as closely to the Calvinistic system as they could, without giving up their distinguishing tenets; and in some doctrinal points, it differs materially from the Confession of 1660. This creed is very metaphysical, and attempts to explain and account for those things which the former only asserts. It is highly probable that this essay at the explication of inexplicable?, introduced or encouraged that spirit of philosophizing on sacred subjects, which soon after its pub- lication, distracted this denomination."' A Mr. Thomas Monk, a minister in Buckinghamshire, was considered as the composer of this " Orthodox Creed."" In the year 1677 was published the first edition of a Confession, which has ever since been regarded as a just exposition of the sentiments of the Calvinistic baptists. It was "put forth by the elders and brethren of many con- gregations of Christians (baptized upon profession of their faith) in London and the country;" but without any names appended. The preface, which is also given in the subse- quent editions, sufficiently explains its object. Following in the steps of the independents,^ its compilers generally adopt word for word the language of the Confession pub- lished by the Assembly of Divines, in the days of the Commonwealth, only departing from it or supplementing its statements, as their peculiar views required. The second edition appeared in 1688. In most copies of this edition a leaf is inserted, informing us that the Confes- sion had received the sanction of the general assembly which met in London in September, 1689. The leaf must, there- fore, have been inserted after the edition itself was published, and some copies in the editor's possession are without it. ' [Taylor s Hist. i. 225, 361.] Cankering Error of the New Euty- chians." 8vo., 1673.] " [He was the author also of a ° [In the Savoy Declaration. See book entitled, " A Cure for the Hanbury's Memorials, iii. 515.] XIV INTRODUCTOKY NOTICE. It appears, however, in the subsequent editions of 1699, 1719, and 1720; since which time the editions have been too numerous to mention. The General Assembly which met in London in June 1693, gave directions that the Confession should be translated into Latin, " with all con- venient speed ;" but whether this was done is not known. A few other Confessions were published during this period by private individuals, as by John Bunyan,' and Vavasor Powell.^ In 1697, both Mr. Benjamin Keach and Mr. Elias Keach published a short Confession for the especial use of their congregations, meeting in Horsley- down and at Tallow Chandlers' Hall. This is based on the " larger Confession, put forth by the elders of the baptized churches, owning personal election and final perseverance." The edition prepared by Mr. Benjamin Keach has a preface addressed to his church, and is followed by the names of the members subscribed, afiirming that the articles " contain what the aforesaid church believes concerning those truths asserted therein." It was signed on the 10th August, 1697. Among other reasons for its publication, Mr. Keach says, that the larger Confession was then out of print. The name of Benjamin Stinton, as teacher, occurs among the signatures. To the Confession, Mr. Keach has added a small treatise on the glory of a true church and its dis- cipline ; the whole constituting a useful manual of doctrine and practical godliness for the members of his church and congregation. The same parts make up the manual of Mr. Elias Keach, which only differs from that of his father in the prefaces and dedications. These are addressed to his own church, then ineeting at Tallow Chandlers' Hall on Dowgate Hill ; but previously at Curriers' Hall, near Cripplegate. It was ' [Works by Off or. vol. ii] ^ [Life and Death of Mr. V. Powell, p. 20. edit. 1071.] INTllODTJCrOEY NOTICE. XV subscribed by the members of the church, on the 15th August, 1697. In the minutes of the general assembly which met in London in June, 1693, we find the following resolution : " That a Catechism be drawn up, containing the substance of the Christian religion, for the instruction of children and servants ; and that brother William Collins be desired to draw it up." From his judgment and knowledge, Mr. Collins, the pastor of a church in Petty France, was well able to produce a satisfactory work. It has often been reprinted, and continues to be the only catechism of value among baptists. Many other catechisms were published during this century, as by Christopher Blackwood,^ Henry Jessey,* and Benjamin Keach ;* this last embracing many other subjects of instruction beside religion. The catechism here reprinted, together with the several Confessions of Faith, will give a complete idea of the pre- vailing docfKnal sentiments of the baptist body in the seven- teenth century. Amids some diversities they held the fundamental verities of the Christian faith, and must indu- bitably be ranked among the hosts of evangelic Christendom. The remaining pieces of this volume require no notice. The notes appended to them will be found to afford the necessary explanations, ' [A Soul Searching Catechism. ' [The Child's Instructor ; a New 2nd edit. 1653.] - and Easy Primer. 24mo. 1664.] * [Catechism for Children, 1673.] DECLARATION OF FAITH OF ENGLISH PEOPLE JREMAINING AT AMSTERDAM IN HOLLAND. PRINTED, 1611. A DECLARATION, ETC. We believe and confess : — ■ 1. That there are three which bear record in heaven, the Father, the Word, and the Spirit ; and these three are one God, in all equality: by whom all things are created and preserved, in heaven and in earth. 1 Jno. v. 7 ; Phil. ii. 5, 6; Gen. i. 2. That this God in the beginning created all things of nothing, and made man of the dust of the earth, in his own imawe, in righteousness and true holiness ; yet being tempted, fell by disobedience. Through whose disobedience, all men sinned : his sin being imputed unto all; and so death went over all men. Gen. i. 1 ; ii. 7 ; i. 27 ; Eph. iv. 24 ; iii. 1, 7; Rom. v. 12, 19. 3. That by the promised seed of the woman, Jesus Christ, fand by] his obedience, all are made righteous, all are made alive: his righteousness being imputed unto all. Rom. v. 19; 1 Cor. XV 22. B 2 4 ()ONFESSK)NS Or FAITH. 4. That notwithstanding this, men are by nature tlie cliildren of wrath, born in iniquity, and in sin conceived ; wise to all evil, but to good they have no knowledge. Eph. ii. 3 ; Psa. li. 5 ; Jer. iv. 22. The natural man receiveth not the things of the Spirit of God. 1 Cor. ii. 14. And therefore man is not restored unto his former estate. But that as man, in his estate of innocency, having in himself all disposition unto good, and no disposition unto evil, yet being tempted might yield, or might resist ; even so now being fallen, and having all disposition unto evil, and no disposition or will unto any good, yet God giving grace, man may receive grace, or may reject grace, according to that saying ; I call heaven and earth to record this day against you, that I have set before you life and death, blessing and cursing; therefore choose life, that both thou and thy seed may live. Deut. xxx. 19. That God before the foundation of the world hath pre- destinated that all that believe in him shall be saved, and all that believe not shall be damned ; all which he knew before. And this is the election and reprobation spoken of in the scriptures, concerning salvation, and condemnation ; and not that God hath predestinated men to be wicked, and so to be damned, but that men being wicked shall be damned. Eph. i. 4, 12 ; Mark xvi. 16 ; Eom. viii. 29. For God would have all men saved, and come to the knowledge of the truth, and would have no man to perish, but would have all men come to repentance, and willeth not the death of him that dieth. 1 Tim. ii. 4 ; 2 Pet. iii. 9 ; Ezek. xviii. 32. And therefore God is the author of no man's condemnation, ac- cording to the saying of the prophet; Thy destruction, O Israel, is of thyself; but thy help is of me. Hos. xiii. 9. AMSTERDAM CONFESSION. 6. That man is justified only by the righteousness of Christ, apprehended by faith; yet faith without works is dead. Rom. iii. 28 ; Gal. ii. 16 ; Jas. ii. 17. That men may fall away from the grace of God, and from the truth, which they have received and acknowledged, after they have tasted of the heavenly gift, and were made par- takers of the Holy Ghost, and have tasted of the good word of God, and of the powers of the world to come ; and after they have escaped from the filthiness of the world, may be entangled again therein, and overcome. Heb. xii. 15 ; x. 26; vi. 4, 5 ; 2 Pet. ii. 20. That a righteous man may forsake his righteousness, and perish. Ezek. xviii. 24, 26. And therefore let no man presume to think, that because he hath, or had once grace, therefore he shall always have grace. But let all men have assurance, that if they continue unto the ■ end, they shall be saved. Let no man then presume ; but let all work out their salvation with fear and trembling. 8. That Jesus Christ, the Son of God, the second Person or subsistence in the Trinity, in the fulness of time was mani- fested in the flesh, being the seed of David, and of the Israelites, according to the flesh, the Son of Mary the Virgin, made of her substance, by the power of the Holy Ghost overshadowing her ; and being thus true man, was like unto us in all things, sin only excepted, being one person in two distinct natures, true God, and true Man. Eom. i. 3 ; ix. 5 ; Gal. iv. 4 ; Luke i. 35 ; Heb. iv. 15. 9. That Jesus Christ is mediator of the new testament 6 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. between God and man, having all power in heaven and in earth given unto him, being the only King, Priest, and Pro- phet of his church. He also being the only Lawgiver, bath in his Testament set down an absolute and perfect rule of direc- tion, for all persons, at all times, to be observed ; which no prince, nor any whosoever, may add to, or diminish from, as they will avoid the fearful judgments denounced against them that shall so do. 1 Tim. ii. 5 ; Matt, xxviii. 18 ; Luke i. 33 ; Heb. vii. 24 ; Acts iii. 22 ; Kev. xxii. 18, 19. 10. That the church of Christ is a company of faithful people, separated from the world by the word and Spirit of God, beinof knit unto the Lord, and one unto another, by baptism, upon their own confession of the faith, and sins. 1 Cor. i. 2 ; Eph. i. 1 ; 2 Cor. vi. 17 ; 1 Cor. xii. 13 ; Acts viii. 37 ; Matt. iii. 6. 11. That though in respect of Christ the church be one, yet it consisteth of divers particular congregations, even so many as there shall be in the world ; every of which congregation, though they be but two or three, have Christ given them, with all the means of their salvation ; are the body of Christ, and a whole church ; and therefore may, and ought, when they are come together, to pray, prophesy, break bread, and administer in all the holy ordinances, although as yet they have no officers, or that their officers should be in prison, sick, or by any other means hindered from the church. Eph. iv. 4 ; Matt, xviii.^20 ; Rom. viii. 32 ; 1 Cor. iii. 22 ; xii. 27; xiv. 23 ; 1 Pet. iv. 10 ; ii. 5. 12. That as one congregation hath Christ, so hath all. And that the word of God cometh not out from any one, neither AilSTERDAM COMl^ESSION. 7 to any one congregation in particular, but unto every par- ticular church, as it doth unto all the world. And therefore no church ought to challenge any prerogative over any other. 2 Cor. X. 7 ; 1 Cor, xiv. -36 ; Col. i. 5, 6. 13. That every church is to receive in all their members by baptism, upon the confession of their faith and sins, wrought by the preaching of the gospel, according to the primitive institution and practice. And therefore churches constituted after any other manner, or of any other persons, are not according to Christ's testament. Matt, xxviii. 19; Actsii. 41. 14. That baptism, or washing with water, is the outward manifestation of dying unto sin, and walking in newness of life ; and therefore in nowise appertaineth to infants. Kom. vi. 2, 3, 4. 15. That the Lord's supper is the outward manifestation of the spiritual communion between Christ and the faithful, mutually to declare his death until he come. 1 Cor. x. 16, 17 ; xi. 26. 16. That the members' of every church or congregation ought to know one another, that so they may perform all the duties of love one towards another, both to soul and body. Matt, xviii. 15; 1 Thess. v. 14; 1 Cor. xii. 25. And especially the elders ought to know the whole flock, whereof the Holy Ghost hath made them overseers. And therefore a church ought not to consist of such a multitude, as cannot have particular knowledge one of another. Acts xx. 28 ; 1 Pet. v. 2, 3. O CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. 17. That brethren impenitent in any one sin, after the admo- nition of the church, are to be excluded the communion of the saints. And therefore not the committing of sin doth cut off any from the church, but refusing to hear the church to reformation. Matt, xviii. 17; 1 Cor. v. 4, 13. 18. That excommunicants, in respect of civil society, are not to be avoided. 2 Thess. iii. 15 ; Matt, xviii. 17. 19. That every church ought, according to the example of Christ's disciples and primitive churches, upon every first day of the week, being the Lord's day, to assemble together, to pray, prophesy, praise God, and break bread, and perform all other parts of spiritual communion for the worship of God, their own mutual edification, and the preservation of true religion and piety in the church. John xx. 19 ; Acts ii. 42 ; XX. 7 ; 1 Cor. xvi. 2. And they ought not to labour in their callings, according to the equity of the moral law ; which Christ came not to abolish, but to fulfil. Exod. xx. 8, &c. 20. That the officers of every church or congregation are either elders, who by their office do especially feed the flock concerning their souls ; or deacons, men and women, who by their ofiice relieve the necessities of the poor and impotent brethren, concerning their bodies. Acts xx. 28 ; 1 Pet. v. 2, 3; Acts vi. 1,4. That these officers are to be chosen when there are persons qualified according to the rules in Christ's testament, bv AMSTERDAM CONFESSION. 9 election and approbation of that church or congregation whereof they are members, with fasting, prayer, and laying on of hands ; and there being but one rule for elders, there- fore but one sort of elders. 1 Tim. iii. 2, 7 ; Tit. i. 6, 9 ; Acts vi. 3, 4 ; xiii. 3 ; xiv. 23. 22. That the officers of every church or congregation, are tied by office only to that particular congregation whereof they are chosen. And therefore they cannot challenge by office any authority in any other congregation whatsoever, except they would have an apostleship. Acts xiv. 23 ; xx. 17 ; Tit. i. 5. 23. That the scriptures of the Old and New Testament are written for our instruction ; and that we ought to search ihem, for they testify of Christ; and therefore to be used with all reverence, as containing the holy word of God, which only is our direction in all things whatsoever. 2 Tim. iii. 16; John v. 39. 24. That magistracy is a holy ordinance of God ; that every soul ought to be subject to it, not for fear only, but for conscience' sake. Magistrates are the ministers of God for our wealth, they bear not the sword for nought. They are the ministers of God, to take vengeance on them that do evil. That it is a fearful sin to speak evil of them that are in dignity, and to despise government. We ought to pay tribute, custom, and all other duties. Rom. xiii. ; 2 Pet. ii. 10. That we are to pray for them ; for God would have them saved, and come to the knowledge of his truth. 1 Tim. ii. 1, 4. And therefore they may be members of the church of Christ, retaining their magistracy ; for no ordinance of 10 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. God debarreth any from being a member of Christ's church. They bear the sword of God ; which sword, in all lawful administrations, is to be defended and supported by the servants of God that are under their government, with their lives, and all that they have, according as in the first institu- tion of that holy ordinance. And whosoever holds otherwise, must hold, if they understand themselves, that they are the ministers of the devil, and therefore not to be prayed for, nor approved, in any of their administrations; seeing all things they do, as punishing offenders, and defending their countries, state, and persons by the sword, is unlawful. That it is lawful in a just cause, for the deciding of strife, to take an oath by the name of the Lord. Heb. vi. 16 ; 2 Cor. i. 23 ; Phil, i, 8. 25. That the dead shall rise again, and the living be changed in a moment: having the same bodies in substance, though diverse in qualities. 1 Cor. xv. 52 ; Job xxxviii. 19 ; xv. 28 ; Luke xxiv. 30. 26. That after the resurrection, all men shall appear before the judgment seat of Christ, to be judged according to their works. That the godly shall enjoy life eternal ; the wicked being condemned, shall be tormented everlastingly in hell. Matt. XXV. 46. FINIS. A CONFESSION OF FAITH OP SEVEN CONGEEaATIONS OE CHUECHES OF CHEIST IN LONDON, WHICH AEE COIMINIONLY (BUT UNIUSTLT) CALLED ANABAPTISTS. PUBLISHED FOR THE VINDICATION OF THE TRUTH, AND INFORMATION OF THE IGNORANT; LIKEWISE FOR THE TAKING OFF OF THOSE ASPERSIONS WHICH ARE FREQUENTLY BOTH IN PULPIT AND PRINT UNJUSTLY CAST UPON THEM. Bui this I confesse unto thee, that after the way which they call heresie, so worship I the God of my Fathers, beleeving all things that are written in the Law and the Prophets, and have hope towards God, which they themselves also allow, that there shall be a resurrection of [^the'] dead both of the just and u?i- jiLst. — Acts xxiv. 14, 15. For we cannot but speak the things that we have seen and heard. — Acts iv. 20. Jf I have spoken evill, bear witnesse of the evill ; but if well, why smitei-t thou me ? — John xviii. 23. Blessed are yee when men revile you, and. say all manner of evill against you falsly for my sake. Rejoyce, §■«. — Matth. v. 11, 12. & xix. 29. THE SECOND IMPRESSION CORRECTED AND ENLARGED. PUBLISHED ACCORDING TO OEDER. LONDON PRINTED BY MATTH. SIMMONS, AND ARE TO BE SOLD BY JOHN HANCOCK IN POPES-HEAD ALLEY, 1646. [Title Page of Fii-st Editiou.] The CONFESSION OF FAITH Of those Churches which are commonly (though falsly) cal- led Akabaptists; Presented to the view of all that feare God, to examine by the touchstone of the Word of Truth : As likewise for the taking off those aspersions which are frequently both in Pulpit and Print, (although unjustly) cast upon them. Acts IT. 20. Wee cannot hut spcake the things lohich wee have secnc and heard. Isai. viii. 20. To the La\c and to the testimony, if they speake not according to this Rule, it is because tlicre is no light in them. 2 Cor. i. 9, 10. But wee had /he sentence of death in ourselves, that wee slioitld not trust in our selves, but in tJie living God, which raiseth the dead ; who delivered us from so great a deaths and doth deliver, in whom wee trust that he wiU yet deliver. LONDON, Printed in the yeai-e of our Loi-d, 164i. [Title Page of Thii-d Edition.] A CONFESSION OF FAITH Of the seTeral Congregations or Chur- ches of Christ in London, which are commonly (though unjustly) called Anabaptists. PnBLISHED, For the Vindication of the truth, and information of the ignorant ; likewise for the taking off of those aspersions which are frequently, both in Pulpit, and Print unjustly cast upon them. UKTO WHICH IS ADDED, HEAKT BLEEDINGS FOR Professors Abhomiuatious. OR A faithfull generall Epistle (from the same Churches) presented to all who have knowne the way of truth, forewarning them to flee security, and carelesse walking under the Profession of the same, discovering some of Sathans wiles, whereby also, wanton persons and their ungodly wayes are disclaimed. But this I confesse unto t/iee, that after the way they call Iteresie, so worship 1 tlie God of my Fathers, believing all tilings that are wnttcn in the Law and the Prophets, and have hope towards God, which they theinselves also aUow, that there sJmU be a resurrection of the dead, both of the just and unjust. Acts xxiv. 14, 15. For we cannot but speake the things which wee have seen, and hewrd. — Acts iv. 20. The third Impression oon-ected. London, Printed by M. S. and are to be sold by F. Tyton at the three daggers in Fleet-Street, and L. Chapman, at the Crowne in Popes-head Alley, 1651. [The Fourth Impression, of 1652. has the same title jmge as the abovp.] [EPISTLE DEDICATORY.] To the Right Honourahle the Lords, Knights, Citizens, and Burgesses in Parliament assembled. Right Honourable and most Noble Patriots, Inasmuch as there hath been a book' lately presented unto you, in whose dedicatory epistle there are many heinous accusations unjustly and falsely laid against us,^ we conceived it necessary to make some declaration of our innocency, and (to the end) humbly to present unto your view this our con- fession of faith : here we unfeignedly declare, what in our hearts we judge, and what we teach, and according to this rule we desire and endeavour, through the grace of God, to lead our lives. This confession of our faith we send forth to speak the truth for us, and so to make our innocency to ap- pear; desiring that the same light may guide others also to the 1 Dr. Featley's Book, dedicated to cities and suburbs thereof and there the Parliament. [The Dippers Dipt, prophesy by turns ; .... they flock or, the Anabaptists Duck'd and in great multitudes to their Jordans, Plung'd over Head and Eares, at a and both sexes enter into the river. Disputation in Souihwarh. 3rd edit., and are dipt after their manner with London, 1645.] a kind of spell, containing the heads 2 [" Of all heretics and schismatics of their erroneous tenets. . And the Anabaptists ought to be most as they defile our rivers with their carefully looked unto, and severely impure washings, and our pulpits punished, if not utterly exterminated with their false prophecies and fa- and banished out of the church and natical enthusiasms, so the presses kingdom. . . They preach, and sweat and gi-oan imder the load of print, and practise their heretical their blasphemies." — Epistle Dedi- impieties openly ; they hold their calory.'] conventicles weekly in our chief 14 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. same way of truth and of obedience, both to God and to the magistrate, who is the minister of God to us for good. We hope your honours will permit us to speak with modesty in our just defence. And when any shall provoke you to lift up a hand against us, we desire you may seriously consider Gamaliel's counsel in Acts v. We take no thought for our- selves, for the Lord our God is all-sufficient ; but we desire and pray that you may do nothing against Christ, neither in his members, nor in his ordinances, that there may be no wrath upon you from the Lord, but that you, knowing the innocent and protecting them according to the will of God, may for the same be famous unto all generations, and the memorial of your names may be precious among the saints till the coming of King Jesus. [PREFACE TO THE FIEST EDITION.] To all tliat desire the lifting up of the name of the Lord Jesus in sincerity, the poor despised churches of God in London send greeting, with prayers for their further increase in the knowledge of Christ Jesus. We question not but that it will seem strange to many men that such as we are frequently termed to be, lying under that calumny and black brand of heretics, and sowers of division as wo.do, should presume to appear so publicly as now we have done. But yet notwithstanding we may well say, to give answer to such, what David said to his brethren, when the Lord's battle was a fighting. 1 Sam. xxix. 30. Is there not a cause ? Surely, if ever people had cause to speak for the vindication of the truth of Christ in their hands, we have, that being indeed the main wheel at this time that sets us a work ; for had anything by men been transacted against our persons only, we could quietly have sitten still, and com- mitted our cause to him who is a righteous Judge, who will in the great day judge the secrets of all men's hearts by Jesus Christ. But being it is not only us, but the truth professed by us, we cannot, we dare not but speak. It is no strange thing to any observing man, what sad charges are laid, not only by the world that know not God, but also by those that think themselves much wronged, if they be not looked upon as the chief worthies of the church of God, and watchmen of the city. But it hath fared with us from them, as from the poor spouse seeking her beloved. Cant. v. 6, 7. They finding us out of that common roadway themselves 16 COXFESSIONS OF FAITH. walk, have smote us and taken away our veil, tliat. so wc may by them be odious in the eyes of all that behold us, and in the hearts of all that think upon us, which they have done both in pulpit and print, charging us with holding free will, falling away from grace, denying original sin, disclaiming of magistracy, denying to assist them either in persons or purse, in any of their lawful commands, doing acts unseemly in the dispensing the ordinance of baptism, not to be named amongst Christians. All which charges we disclaim as notoriouslj'' untrue, though, by reason of these calumnies cast upon us, many that fear God are discouraged and forestalled in har- bouring a good thought, either of us or what we profess ; and many that know not God [are] encouraged, if they can find the place of our meeting, to get together in clusters to stone us, as looking upon us as a people holding such things, as that we are not worthy to live. We have, therefore, for the clearing of the truth we pro- fess, that it may be at liberty though we be in bonds, briefly published a confession of our faith, as desiring all that fear God, seriously to consider, whether (if they compare what we here say and confess, in the presence of the Lord Jesus and his saints) men have not with their tongues in pulpit, and pens in print, both spoken and written things that are contrary to truth. But we know our God in his ow^n time will clear our cause, and lift up his Son to make him the chief corner stone, though he has been (or now should be) rejected of master builders. And because it may be conceived, that what is here published may be but the judgment of some one particular congregation, more refined than the rest, we do therefore here subscribe it, some of eacb body in the name, and by the appointment of seven congregations ; who, though we be distinct in respect of our particular bodies, for conveniency sake, being as many as can well meet together in one place, yet are all in communion, PREFACE TO FIRST EDITION. 17 holding Jesus Christ to be our Head and Lord; under whose government we desire alone to walk, in following the Lamb wheresoever he goeth. And we believe the Lord will daily cause truth more to appear in the hearts of his saints, and make them ashamed of their folly in the land of their iiativitj', that so they may, with one shoulder, more study to lift up the name of the Lord Jesus, and stand for his appoint- ments and laws ; which is the desires and prayers of the con- temned churches of Christ in London for all saints. Subscribed in the names of seven William Kiffen, Thomas Patience. John Spilsbeey, George Tipping, Samuel Richardson. Thomas Skippard, Thomas Mundat. Thomas Gtunne, churches in London : John Mabbatt. John Webb, Thomas Killcop. Paul Hobson, Thomas Goare. Joseph Phelpes, Edward Heath. 18 (JONFESSIONS OF FAITH. [PEEFACE TO THE SECOND EDITION.] To the judicious and impartial Readier. Courteous Reader ; It is 110 wonder if it seem strange to thee, that we should publish a confession of our faith, who are frequently termed to be heretics and schismatics, and what not, though unjustly ; neither is it any discouragement unto us, though this sect (as they call the anabaptists) is everywhere spoken against. Acts xxviii. 22 ; and in that we are charged (for Christ's name sake) with the same things our Lord Jesus Christ and his apostles were accused of. It is a mercy, an honour, and and a comfort unto us, when we remember what our Lord hath said unto us. Blessed are ye when men shall revile you, and persecute you, and say all manner of evil falsely, for my sake; rejoice and be exceeding glad, for great is your reward in heaven, for so persecuted they the prophets that were before you. Matt. V. 11, 12. Tlie disciple is not above his master, nor the servant above his Lord; it is enough for the disciple that he be as his master, and the servant as his Lord. If they have called the master of the house Beelzebub, how much more shall they call tliem of his household? Matt. x. 24, 25. If the world hate you, ye know that it hated me before it hated you : if ye were of the world, the world would love her own, but because ye are not of the world, but I have chosen you out of the world, therefore the world hateth you. The servant is not greater than the Lord : if they have persecuted me, they will also persecute you, §-c. All these things will they do unto you for my name's sake, because they know not him that sent me ; yea, and all that will live godly in Christ Jesus shall suffer persecution: but rejoice, inasmuch as ye are partakers of Chriifs ."bufferings, that when PREFACE TO SECOND EDITION. 19 his glory shall be revealed, ye may he glad also with exceeding joy. John xv. 18, 19, 20, 21 ; see Acts xxi. 28, 30, 31 ; and xiv. 22; 2 Tim. iii. 12: 1 Pet. iv. 13. Our Lord Jesus was accused to be a seditious and mutinous fellow ; Luke xxiii. 25. Paul was called a pestilent fellow, and a mover of sedition, aud a ringleader of the sect of Nazarenes, Acts xxiv. 1, 5, 6, 8 ; xviii. 13 ; saying. Away tcith such a fellow, for it is not fit he should live ; saying. This fellow persuadeth men to worship God contrary to the law. And our Lord Jesus Christ was accused of perverting the people, and forbidding to give tribute to Csesar ; and that he and his disciples did teach novelties, and brake the traditions of the elders. Luke xxiii. 2, 14 ; Matt. XV. 1 — 9. Christ was accused to have a devil, and to be mad; saying to the people. Why do ye hear him? John x. 20. Paul was esteemed to be mad : also they said. What will this babbler say? and that he taught new doctrine, Acts xxvi. 24, 25 ; xvii. 18, 19. And Christ was accused to speak blasphemy, and they all condemned him to be guilty of death. Mark xiv. 64. So some are offended at us for meeting in houses to preach, and would have us punished for it ; not- withstanding, it was Christ's and his apostles' practice to do so, whose example we are to follow. Christ taught upon a mountain, and in a ship. Paul preached from house to house. Also the church met together in an upper room, where Peter preached; and Paul preached, and converted Lydia by the river side ; the disciples met together in the nioht in an upper room; Paul preached two years in an hired house, and received all that came unto him. Matt. v. 1, 2 ; and xiii. 2 ; Acts xx. 20 ; i. 13, 15, 16 ; ii. 2 ; xvi. 13, 14- XX. 7, 8, 9; xxviii. 30, 31. If he had lived in these days and done so, it is to be feared some would have petitioned against him. So some accuse us to be disturbers of the peace of the commonwealth ; yet all that know us can testify for c 2 20 CONFESSIONS OF FATTIi. US, that we meet together and depart in a peaceable manner. And from Acts xvii. 5, 6, 7, it will appear, what persons they were that disturbed the public peace; it is fit such persons should be taken notice of and accordingly punished. So we are blamed, because we frequent not their temples. We dare not trust in lying words, saying, Tlie temple of the Lord, the temple of the Lord, are these. We know the Most High dwelleth not in temples made with hands ; and that we are the temple of the living God ; and that our bodies are the temples of the Holy Ghost ; and that Christ's church is not built with dead stones. Act vii. 48 ; xvii. 24, 25 ; 1 Cor. iiL 16; vi. 3, 19; 1 Pet. ii. 4, 5; John iv. 20, &c. And because there are but a few of us, some conceive we are in an error, and that the least number should yield to the greater ; then it seems, if the number of the papists or atheists exceed the number of the protestants, they must forsake their religion. God in times past suffered all nations to walk in their own ways ; there was but one true prophet to four hundred false. Actsxiv. 16; Exod. xxiii. 2; 1 King xxii. 6, 7, &c. After three years' preaching aud working miracles by Christ, there was but a small number. Christ calls his, a little flock : the scripture declares the greatest number followed after the beast. Acts i. 14, 15; Luke xii. 32 ; Matt. vii. 13, 14; "Rev. xiii. 7, 16, 17. Also those that preach amongst us are esteemed, as the apostles were, to be unlearned and ignorant men. Apollos was instructed more perfectly in the way of God by Aquila, a tradesman, and Priscilla his wife ; Acts iv. 13 ; xviii. 1, 2, 3, 26. But the scripture saith; As every man hath received the gift, even so minister the same one to another, as good stewards of the manifold grace of God. 1 Pet. iv. 10, 11 ; see 1 Cor. xiv. 3, 26, 31. Also some say of us, that we be of several sects, and that we cannot agree among ourselves. Pilate and Herod agreed together to crucify Christ; we dare not agree as the Jews did, that if any did confess that PREFACE TO SECOND EDITION. 21 Jesus was the Christ, he should be put out of the synagogue. Luke xxiii. 12; John ix. 22; see 1 Cor. i. 10, 11. The union Christ prayed for, we desire : and for such an agree- ment as agreeth not with the truth, we may not agree unto ; therefore we desire it. not. John xvii. 21; Eph. iv. 3 — 17. Yet the psedobaptists differ more among themselves than we do, and if this their reason have any strength in it, it is against themselves : the several sects of paedobaptists be papists, Arians, Nestorians, Pelagians, Donatists, Euty- chians, Grecians, Lutherans, Arminians, Episcopalians, Nicolaites, Calvlnists, Zuinglians, Hussites, and above twenty other several sects, which are all baptizers of infants : and notwithstanding, for other points, are all asunder, and have all rent one from another ; therefore we send them to follow the counsel of Christ. Matt. vil. 3, 4, 5. As the watchman dealt with the spouse of Christ, in her seeking her beloved, so they deal with us. Song iii. 2, 5 ; V. 6, 7. They finding us out of that common and broad way themselves walk in, they smite us, and take away our veil, and veil us with reproaches and odious names: to incense all, both good and bad, against us, that we may appear vile in the eyes and hearts of all that behold us, or shall hear of us. Acts xvi. 19. Which they endeavour to do, both in pulpit and print, not fearing to charge us with holding free-will, falling from grace, denying election, original sin, children's salvation, the Old Testament, and men's propriety in their estates, and censuring all to be damned that are not of our judgment and practice ; all which we disclaim, because they are untrue. And as for the other things whereof we are accused, we refer those who desire further satisfaction to the answers of them.' Yet by reason of the many accusations ' In a Bmall treatise, intituled, by Samuel Richardson. [4to. London, Briefe Considerations on Dr. Featley, 1645.] his Book, intituled, The Dipper Dipt, 22 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. that are cast upon us, although they cannot prove the things whereof we are accused, yet the generality of the people arc incensed against us, and are encouraged, and set on by such, to seek out the place of our meetings, which are the more private, not because they are private, but because we have not any more public places; but if any shall please to procure us more larger places to meet in, we are willing to embrace them with thankfulness and joy, although no man should speak for us to those in authority, from whom one word were enough to protect us from the violence we should be subject unto. But as it was then. Acts xvii. 5, 6, 7, so it is now; yet must we bear all the blame. But our God will in his time clear our innocency, although now many stand looking upon us as a people (holding such things) not worthy to live, and are in danger by the rude multitude gathering together to stone us. And had it been against our persons only, we would have held our peace, and committed our cause to God ; but considering it is the truth that we profess that suffers, we may not, nor dare not be neuters in matters of so high a nature, but come in and speak to the help of the Lord against the mighty. Therefore, to free ourselves and the truth we profess from such unjust aspersions, that it may be at liberty, though we be in bonds, we have published a brief confession of our faith (which we conceive most void of contention in these sad and troublesome times). The thoughts of our hearts as in the presence of God we here declare, that it may appear to the consciences of them that fear God, what wrong we suffer from some who have ability to cast mists, and dark clouds, which overshadow the glory of the truth, and them that profess it. Jude, 14 15. And although they acknowledge with us that the truth is not fully discovered, yet they will tie all future discovery to a former light, and conceive they do well in so doing. But God will by his truth PKEFACE TO SECOND EDITION. 23 show their error, and exalt Jesus Christ, the chief corner- stone, which the builders so much reject. And lest this should be thought to be the judgment of some particular persons, this is done by the consent and appointment of seven congregations or churches in London, with the names of some of each of them subscribed in the behalf of the whole. And although we be distinct in our meetings, for conveniency ; yet are we one in faith, fellowship, and communion, holding Jesus Christ for our head and lawgiver, under whose rule and government we desire to walk, and to follow the Lamb ■wheresoever he goeth, that when our Lord and King shall call us to account, we may be found ready and worthy to be received into our Master's joy. Until which time we desire to spend these few days we have here to remain, to the glory of God, the honour of the gospel, the saints' comfort, and our country's good, to our own account at the great day when Christ shall come in flaming fire, taking vengeance on them that know not God, and that obey not the gospel of our Lord Jesus Christ. 2 Thess. i. 8. Subscribed by us in the behalf of seven congregations or churches of Christ in London. As also by a French con- gregation of the same judgment. Thomas Gunnb, Thomas Munden, John Mabbit, Geoegb Tipping, John Spilsbeey, Willam Kipfen, Samuel Ejchaedson, Thomas Patient, Paul Hobson, Hanseed Knollts, Thomas Goaee, Thomas Holms, Benjamin Cockes, Denis le Baebiee, Thomas Kilikop. Ceistoph le Dueet.^ ^ [Five of these names do not were appended to the first edition appear in the first edition ; viz., which do not appear here ; viz., Hanserd Knollys, Thomas Holms, Thomas Skippard, John Webbe, Benjamin Cockes (or Cox) and the Joseph Phelps, and Edward Heath.] two French ministers. Four names 24 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. THE EPISTLE TO THE KEADER." COUETEOUS ReADEK, There is nothing wherein saints should be more con- versant than in promoting the honour of the Lord and his Christ, striving and studying to walk before him agreeable to the truth recorded in his word ; the consideration of which is a strong inducement unto us to engage (to the utmost of our abilities) in this work, that when other men content themselves by living below the rule, we may strive to walk close thereunto (suitable to the pattern left us by God in his word) ; and when many account it their glory to turn their backs upon what they professed to have received from Christ, we may strive to honour God, by a stedfast continuance in what we have received, and in a diligent speaking the things which we have seen and heard from him, the weight of which at first prevailed upon us to declare unto the world this our confession of faith and faithful epistle, which we have again reprinted, and made public for the reasons following: — Firsts The invitations and earnest solicitations of several of our brethren, from all parts of the nation, whose hearts long to behold (in public) our stability and perseverance in the way and truth of our God, that by it they may have where- with to put to silence those who have lately taken liberty to reproach and undervalue the truth professed by us. Secondly, That the world may behold that through o-race, ' [For the Dedication and Ad- substituted in the editions of 1651 dresa to the Reader of the edition and 1652.] of 16i6, the following Epistle is THE EPISTLE TO THE READEK. 25 (by which alone we stand) we are preserved from backsliding or revolting from the way and truth, we for some years have followed God in: in which (through faith and obedience) we trust to be continued, unto the coming of our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ. Thirdly, That we might prevent Satan and his accomplices in their enterprises, who have of late abounded more than ordinary with stratagems and inventions, to circumvent poor saints in their stability and love unto the truth ; amongst which this was no small one (in several remote parts), that we had cast off all our former profession and practice, so that none remained together worshipping God in his way, own- ing themselves the churches of Christ, but were grown up to a further attainment and light (as they say) to live more immediately with God and Christ, than in such low, mean, and contemptible a way as ordinances, thinking thereby to stumble and dishearten many whose hearts were approved to God. Fourthly; That we might take off prejudice from the hearts of those (many of which we have comfortable hopes) who are or may be prejudiced against us, from these many invectives and bitter unjust reproaches, we are or may be (for worshipping God according to our conscience and the rule of truth) exposed unto, and they (if it be the good pleasure of our God) come to understand our practice, and subject themselves to the Lord in his commands. Lastly, The remembrance of what good this our under- taking hath formerly done, in the countries where it hath been spread (of which we had particular notice from several, whose hearts have been refreshed therewith), is no small in- ducement to us to bring this forth again in print. Courteous friend ! we desire thee soberly to weigh and consider what we have professed before men, and angels, out of the simplicity of our hearts, and let not prejudice prevent 26 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. thy profiting ; but make it thy great care and study to give up thy understanding to love and receive the truth, as it is in Jesus, delighting thyself in that government, which is by his own hand established in his house. Be not disheartened although thou shouldest hear of the miscarriage of some, knowing that in many things we sin all, and come short oi the grace of our God ; nor if thou shouldest be advertised of the falling away of any one, do but consider we live in the last ages of the world, wherein many shall depart from the truth (neither is it a new thing for men to relinquish their profession). But strive thou to follow God fully, and to stand fast in the simplicity of the truth ; and God our Father, and our Lord Jesus Christ, be with thee, and be thy guide and coun- sellor. Signed in the name, and by the appointment of the afore- said several churches, meeting in London. William Kiffen, Edwakd Harrison, John Spilsbery, Richard Graves, Joseph Sanson, Edward Roberts, Hugh Gosnell, Thomas Waters, Thomas Fault, Henry Forty, Joseph Patshall, Thomas Young, William Conset, John Watson.* * [Only two of the above, Mr. W. Kiffin and Mr. John Spilsbery, signed the previous editions.] A CONFESSION OF FAITH SEVEN* CONGREGATIONS OR CHURCHES OF CHRIST IN LONDON, WHICH ARE COMMONLY (THOUGH UNJUSTLY) CALLED ANABAPTISTS. I. The Lord our God is but (1 Cor. vili. 6; Tsa. xliv. 6, xlvi. 9) one God, whose (Exod. iii. 14) subsistence is in himself; whose essence cannot be comprehended by any but himself; who only hath immortality (1 Tim. vi. 16), dwell- ing in the light which no man can approach unto ; who is in himself most (Isa. xliii. 15) holy, every way (Psal. cxlvii. 5) infinite, in (Deut. xxxii. 3) greatness, (Job. xxxvi. 6) wis- dom, (Jer. X. 12) power, love ; (Exod. xxxiv. 6, 7) merciful and gracious, long-suffering and abundant in goodness and truth, who giveth (Acts xvii. 28 ; Kom. xi. 36) being, moving, and preservation to all creatures. II. In this divine and infinite being, there is the (1 Cor. i. 3) Father, the (John i. 1) Word, and the (John xv. 26) Holy Spirit, each having the whole divine (Exod. iii. 14) essence, yet the essence undivided ; aU infinite without any beginning, ' [Thescveral; editions, 1651, 1652.] 28 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. therefore but (1 Cor. viii. 6) one God, who is not to be divided in nature and being, but distinguished by several pecuHar relative properties. III. God hath (Isa. xlvi. 10 ; Eph. i. 11 : E,om. xi. 33) decreed in himself before the world was concerning all things, (Psa. cxv. 3, cxxxv. 6) whether necessary, (Psal. xxxiii. 15 ; 1 Sam. X. 9, 26) accidental, or voluntary, with all the circum- stances of them,* to work, dispose, and bring about all things' according to the counsel of his own will, to his glory (yet without being the author of sin, or having fellowship with any therein) ; in which appears his wisdom in disposing all things, unchangeableness, powei", and faithfulness in accom- plishing his decree : and God hath, before the foundation of the world, foreordained some men to eternal life, through Jesus Christ, to the praise and glory of his grace ; leaving the rest in their sin^ to their just condemnation, to the praise of his justice. Prov. xxi. 6 ; Exod. xxi. 13 ; Pro v. xvi. 33 ; Psal. cxliv.; Isa. xlv. 7; Jer. xiv. 22 ; Matt. vi. 28, 30 ; Col. i. 16, 17; Numb, xxiii. 19, 20; Rom. iii. 4; Jer. x. 10; Eph. i. 4, 5 ; Jude 4, 6 ; Prov. xvi. 4. IV. In the (Gen. i. 1 ; Col. i. 16 ; Isa. xlv. 12) beginning God made all things very good ; created man after his own (1 Cor. XV. 45, 46) image, filled with all meet perfection of nature, and free from all sin; but (Eccles. vii. 29) loner he abode not in this honour, Satan using the subtlety of the (Gen. iii. 1, 4, 5 ; 2 Cor. xi. 3) serpent to seduce first Eve, « ["Whether necessary ... of » ["To act in their sin," edit, them ;" omitted in edit., 1651, 1652 ] 1651-2.] ' [" About all things," — tJiem about, edit. 1651, 2.J LONDON CONFESSION. 29 then by her seducing Adam ; who without any compulsion, in eating the forbidden fruit, (1 Tim. ii. 14) transgressed the command of God, and fell, whereby (Gal. iii. 22) death came upon all his posterity, who now are conceived in sin, and by nature the children of wrath, the servants of sin, the subjects of (Rom. V. 12, 18, 19, vi. 22 ; Ephes. ii. 3) death, and other miseries in this world, and for ever, unless the Lord Jesus Christ set them free. V. God in his infinite (Job xxxviii. 11) power and wisdom, doth (Isa. xlvi. 10, 11 ; Eccles. iii. 14) dispose all things to the end for which they were created, that neither good nor evil 9 befalls any by chance, or without his (Matt. x. 29, 30 ; Exod. xxi. 13; Prov. xvi. 33) providence; and that what- soever befalls the elect, is by his appointment, for his glory, and their (Kom. viii. 28) good. VI. All the elect being (Jer. xxxi. 3) loved of God with an everlasting love, are (Eph. i. 3, 7, ii. 4, 9 ; 1 Thess. v. 9) redeemed, quickened, and saved, not by themselves, nor their own works, lest any man should boast, but only and whoUy by God, of his free (Acts xiii. 38 ; 2 Cor. v. 21 ; Jer. ix. 23, 24) grace and mercy through Jesus Christ, who is made imto us by God, (1 Cor. i. 30, 31; Jer. xxiii."6) wisdom, ritfhteousness, sanctification, and redemption, and all in all, that he that rejoiceth might rejoice in the Lord. VIL And (John xvii.. 3 ; Heb. v. 9) this is life eternal, that we might know him the only true God, and Jesus Christ whom he hath sent. And (1 Thess. i. 8 ; John vi. 36) on the con- • [" Good nor evil" — anything, edit. 1651, 2.] 30 COXFESSIOXS OF FAITH. trary, the Lord will render vengeance in flaming fire, to them that know not God, and obey not the gospel of Jesus Christ. VIII. The rule of this knowledge, faith, and obedience, concern- ing the worship of God, in which is contained the whole duty of man, is (not (Col. ii. 23; Matt. xv. 9, 6) men's laws, or unwritten ^ traditions, but) only the word of God con- tained in the holy (John v. 39 ; 2 Tim. iii. 15, 16, 17 ; Isa. viii. 20 ; Gal. i. 8, 9 ; Acts iii. 22, 23) scriptures, in which is plainly recorded whatsoever is needful for us to know, believe, and practise, which are the only rule of holiness and obedience for all saints, at all times, in all places to be ob- served. IX. The Lord Jesus Christ, of whom (Gen. iii. 15, xxii. 18, xlix. 10; Dan. vii. 13, ix. 24, 25, 26) Moses and the pro- phets wrote, the apostles preached, he is the (Prov. viii. 23 ; John i. 1, 2, 3 ; Heb. i. 8) Son of God, the brightness of his glory, &c. by whom he made the world, who upholdeth and governeth all things that he hath made ; who also, when the (Gal. iv. 4) fulness of time was come, was made of a woman, of the tribe of (Heb. vii. 14; Rev. v. 5; with Gen. xlix. 9, 10; Rom. i. 3, ix. 10 ; Matt. i. 16 ; Luke iii. 23, 26 ; Heb. ii. 16 ; Isa. liii. 3, 4, 5 ; Heb. iv. 15) Judah, of the seed of Abraham and David ; to wit, of the Virgin Mary, the Holy Spirit coming down upon her, the power of the Most High overshadowing her ; and he was also tempted as we are, yet without sin. X. Jesus Christ (1 Tim. ii. 5 ; Heb. ix. 15 ; John xiv. 6) is ' [" Unwritten ;" omitted in edit. 1651, 2.] LONDON CONFESSION. 31 made the mediator of the new and everlasting covenant of grace between Grod and man, ever to be (Isa. ix. 6, 7) per- fectly and fully the prophet, priest, and king of the church of God for evermore. XI. Unto this office he was appointed by (Prov. viii. 23 ; Isa. xlii. 6, xlix. 15) God from everlasting, and in respect of his manhood, from the womb called, separated, and (Isa. xi. 2, 3, 4, 5, Ixi. 1, 2, with Luke iv. 17, 22 ; John i. 14, 16, iii. 34) anointed most fully and abundantly with all gifts neces- sary, God having without measure poured out his Spirit upon him. XII. Concerning his mediatorship, the scripture holds forth Christ's call to his office: for (Heb. v. 4, 5, 6) none takes this honour upon him, but he that is called of God as was Aaron; it being an action of God, whereby a special promise being made, he ordains his Son to this office ; which promise is, ' that Christ should be made a sacrifice for sin, that he should see his (Isa. liii. 10, 11) seed, and prolong his days, and the pleasure of the Lord shall prosper in his hand, (John iii. 16 ; Bom. viii. 32) all of mere free and absolute grace towards God's elect, and without any condition foreseen in them to procure it. XIIL This office, to be mediator, that is, to be prophet, priest, and king of the church of God, is so proper to Christ, that neither in whole, or any part thereof, it cannot be transferred from him to any other. (1 Tim. ii. 5; Heb. vii. 14; Dan- vii. 14; Acts iv. 12.; Luke i. 33; John xiv. 6). 32 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. XIV. This office to which Christ is called, is threefold, as (Deut. viii. 15, with Acts iii. 22, 23) a prophet, (Heb. iii. 1, and iv. 14, 15) priest, and (Psal. ii. 6) king : this number and order of offices is necessary ; for in respect of our (2 Cor. v. 20 ; Acts xxvi. 18) ignorance, we stand in need of his prophetical office. And in respect of our great (Col. i. 21) alienation from Grod, we need his priestly office to reconcile us : and in respect of our averseness and utter inability to return to God, we need his kingly office, to (John xvi. 8) convince, (Psal. ex. 3) subdue, (Cant. i. 3 ; John vi. 44) draw, (Phil. iv. 13) uphold and (2 Tim. iv. 18) preserve us to his heavenly kingdom. XV. Concerning the prophesy of Christ, it is that whereby he hath (John i. 18, and xii. 49, 50, and xv. and xvii. 8 ; Deut. xviii. 15) revealed the will of God, whatsoever is needful for his servants to know and (Matt, xxiii. 10) obey ; and there- fore he is called not only a prophet and doctor, and the (Heb. iii. 1) apostle of our profession, and the (Mai. iii. 1) angel of the covenant, but also the very (1 Cor. i. 24 ; Col. ii. 3) wisdom of God, in whom are hid all the treasures of wisdom and knowledge, who for ever continueth revealing the same truth of the gospel to his people. XVI. That he might be a prophet every way complete, it was necessary he should be God, and also that he should be man- for unless he had been God, he could never have perfectly understood the will of God ; and unless he had been man, he could not suitably have unfolded it in his own person to men. John i. 18 ; Acts iii. 22, with Deut. xviii. 15 ; Heb. i. 1. LONDON CONFESSION. 33 That Jeaus Christ is God is wonderful clearly expressed iu the scriptures. He is called, the mighty God, Isa. is. 6 ; that Word was Qod, John i 1 ; Christ •who is God over aU, Rom. ix. 5 ; God manifested in the flesh, \ Tim. iiL 16. The same is very God, 1 John v. 20 ; he is the first, Rev. i. 8 ; he gives being to all things, and without him was nothing made, John i. 2 ; he forgiveth sins. Matt. ix. 6 ; he is before Abraham, John viii. 58 ; he was, and is, and ever will be the same, Heb. xiii 8 ; he is always with his to the end of the world. Matt, xxviii. 20, which could not be said of Jesus Christ, if he were not God. And to the Son he sdith. Thy throne, God, is for ever and ever, Heb. L 8 ; John i. 18. Also, Christ is not only perfectly God, but perfect man, made of a woman, Gal. iv. 4, made of the seed of David, Rom, i. 3 ; coming out of the loins of David, Acts ii 30, of Jesse and Judah, Acts xiii. 23 ; in that the children were partakers of flesh and blood, he himself likewise took part with them, Heb. ii. 14; he took not on him the nature of angels, but the seed of Abraham, V. 16. So that we are hone of his toiie, and flesh of his flesh, Eph, v. 30 ; so that he that sanctifUth, and they that are sanctified, arc all of one, Heb. it 11. See Acts iii 22, Deut. xviii. 1 5, Heb. i. 1. XVII. Concerning his (John xvli. 19 ; Heb. v. 7, 8, 9, and x. 12; E.om. V. 19 ; Eph. v. 2 ; Col. i. 20 ; Eph. ii. 14, 15, 16; Horn, viii. 34) priesthood, Christ having sanctified himself, hath appeared once to put away sin, by that one offering of him- self a sacrifice for sin, by which he hath fully finished and suffered all things God required for the salvation of his elect, and removed all rites and shadows, &c., and is now entered within the veil into the holy of holies, which is the presence of God. Also, he makes his people a spiritual house, an holy priesthood, to offer up spiritual sacrifice acceptable to God through him. Neither doth the Father accept, or Christ offer to the Father, any other worship or worshippers. Heb. ix. 24, and viii. 1 ; 1 Pet. ii. 5 ; John iv. 23, 24. XVIII. The priesthood was not legal or temporary, but according to the order of (Heb. vii. 17) Melchisedec, and is stable and perfect, not for a (Heb. vii. 1 6, 18, 19, 20, 21, 24, 25) time, but D 34 (.ONFESSIONS OF FAITH. for ever, which is suitable to Jesus Christ, as to him that ever liveth : Christ was the priest, sacrifice, and altar : he was a priest according to both natures; he was a sacrifice according to his human nature, whence in (Heb. v. 6) scripture it is attributed to his body, to his (Heb. x. 10; I Pet. i. 18, 19 ; Col. i. 20, 22) blood : yet the effectualness of this sacrifice did depend upon his divine nature, therefore it is called the blood of God. He was the altar according to his (Heb. ix. 13; Acts XX. 28) divine nature, it belonging to the (Heb. ix. 14, and xiii. 10, 12, 15; Matt, xxiii. 17; John xvii. 19) altar to sanctify that which is offered upon it, and so it ought to be of greater dignity than the saci'ifice itself. XIX. Concerning his kingly office, (1 Cor. xv. 4; 1 Pet. iii. 21, 22 ; Matt, xxviii. 18, 19, 20; Luke xxiv. 51 ; Acts i. 1, and V. 30, 31; John xix. 36; Eom. xiv. 9; John v. 26, 27; Rom. V. 6, 7, 8, and xiv. 17 ; Gal. v. 22, 23 ; Mark i. 27 ; Heb. i. 14 ; John xvi. 15 ; Job. i. 8 ; Eom. i. 21, xvii. 18 ; Eph. iv. 17, 18; 2 Pet. ii.) Christ being risen from the dead, and ascended into heaven, and having all power in heaven and earth, he doth spritually govern his church, and doth exercise his power over all angels and men, good and bad, to the pre- servation and salvation of the elect, and to the over-ruling and destruction of his enemies. By this kingly power he applieth the benefits, virtue, and fruits of his prophesy and priesthood to his elect, subduing their sins, preserving and strengthening them in all their conflicts against Satan, the world, and the flesh, keeping their hearts in faith and filial fear by his Spirit: by this his mighty power he -ruleth the vessels of wrath, using, limiting, and restraining them as it seems good to his infinite wisdom. LONDON CONFESSION. 35 XX. This his kingly power shall be more fully manifested when he shall come in glory to reign among his saints, when he shall put down all rule and authority under his feet, that the glory of the Father may be perfectly manifested in his Son, and the glory of the Father and the Son in all his members. 1 Cor. XV. 24, 28; Heb. ix. 28; 2 Thess. i. 9, 10; 1 Thess. iv. 15, 16, 17 ; John xvii. 21, 26. XXI. Jesus Christ by his death did purchase salvation for the elect that God gave unto him. These only have interest in him, and fellowship with him,* for whom he makes intercession to his Father in the behalf of, and to them alone' doth God by his Spirit apply this redemption unto, as also the free gift of etei-nal life* is given to them, and none else. Eph. i. 14 ; Heb. v. 9 ; Matt. i. 21 ; John xvii. 6 ; Heb. vii. 25 ; 1 Cor. ii. 12 ; Rom. viii. 29, 30 ; 1 John v. 12 ; John xv. 13; John iii. 16. XXII. Faith is the (Ephes. \i. 8; John vi. 29, and iv. 10; Phil. i. 29 Gal. v. 22) gift of God, wrought in the hearts of the elect by the Spirit of God; by which faith^ they come to know and believe the truth of the (John xvii. 17; Heb. iv. 11, 12; John vi. 63) scriptures, and 2 ["These have interest in him, * ["And glory;" inserted in edit, and being called have fellowship with 1651, 2.] him."— Edit. 1651, 2.] ' ["Faith;" omitted in edit. 3 [" Alone," omitted in edit., 1 651, 2.] 1651, 2.] D 2 3G COXFIXSIOXS OF FAITH. the excellency of them above all other writings and all things ill the world, as they hold forth the glory of God in his attributes, the excellency of Christ in his nature and offices, and of the power and fulness of the Spirit in its work- iags and operations, and so are enabled to cast their souls upon this truth thus believed. XXIII. All those that have this precious faith wrought in them by the Spirit, can never finally nor totally fall away, seeing the gifts of God are without repentance ; (Matt. vii. 24, 25 ; John xiii. 10; John x. 28, 29) so that he still begets and nourisheth in them faith, repentance, love, joy, hope, (1 Pet. i. 4, 5, 6 ; Isa. xlix. 13, 14, 15, 16) and all the graces of the Spirit unto immortality ; and though many storms and floods arise and beat against them, yet they shall never be able to take them off that foundation and rock, which by faith they are fastened upon ; notwithstanding through un- belief, and the temptations of Satan, the sensible sight of this light and love be clouded and overwhelmed for a time, yet God is still the same, and they shall be sure to be kept by the power of God unto salvation, where they shall enjoy their purchased possession, they being engraven upon the palms of his hands, and their names having been written in the book of life from all eternity. XXIV Faith is ordinarily (Rom. x. 17 ; 1 Cor. i. 28) begotten by the preaching of the gospel, or word of Christ, without respect to (Rom. ix. 16) any power or agency in the creature; but it being wholly (Ezek. xvi. 16 ; Rom. iii. 12) passive, and dead in trespasses and sins, doth believe and is converted by no less (Rom. i. 16; Ephes. i. 19; Col. ii. 12) power than that which raised Christ from the dead. LONDON CONFESSION. 37 XXV. The preaching of the gospel to the conversion of sinners is (John iii. 14, 15, and i. 12; Isa. Iv. 1; John vii. 37) absolutely free ; no way requiring as absolutely necessary, any qualifications, preparations, or terrors of the law, or pre- ceding ministry of the law ; but only and alone the naked soul, a (1 Tim. i. 15; Rom. iv. 5, and v. 8; Acts v. 30, 31, and ii. 36 ; 1 Cor. i. 22, 24) sinner and ungodly, to receive Christ crucified, dead, and buried, and risen again, who is made a Prince and a Saviour for such sinners as through the gospel shall be brought to believe on him. XXVI. The same power that converts to faith in Christ, carrieth on the (1 Pet. i. 5 ; 2 Cor. xii. 9) soul through all duties, temptations, conflicts, sufferings ; and whatsoever a believer is, he is by (1 Cor. xv. 10; Phil. ii. 12, 13; John xv. 5 ; Gal. ii. 19, 20) grace, and is carried on in all obedience and temp- tations by the same. XXVII. All believers (1 Thess. i. 1; Johnxvii. 21, and xx. 17; Heb. ii. 11; 1 John iv. 16) are by Christ united to God, by which union God is one with them and they are one with him; and that all believers are the (Gal. ii. 19, 20) sons of God, and joint heirs with Christ, to whom belong all the promises of this life, and that which is to come. XXVIII. Those that have union with Christ, are justified from (1 John i. 7 ; Heb. x. 14, and ix. 26; 2 Cor. v. 19 ; Rom. iii. 23 ; Acts xiii. 38, 39 ; Rom. v. 1, and iii. 25, 30) all their sins by the blood of Christ; which justification is a gracious 38 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. and full acquittance of a guilty sinner from all sin, by God, through the satisfaction that Christ hath made by his death for all their sins. And this applied (in the manifestation of it) through faith.* XXIX. All believers are a holy and ( 1 Cor. xi.; 1 Pet. ii. 9) sanctified people, and that sanctification is a spiritual grace'' of the (Eph. i. 4) new covenant, and an effect of the (1 John iv. 16; Matt, xxviii. 20) love of God manifested in the soul, whereby the believer presseth after a heavenly and evangelical obedi- ence to all the commands which Christ, as head and king in his new covenant, hath prescribed to them. XXX. All believers through the knowledge of (2 Cor. v. 19; E.om. V. 9, 10) that justification of life given by the Father, and brought forth by the blood of Christ, have as their great privilege of that new (Isa. liv. 10, and xxvi. 12) covenant, peace with God and reconciliation, whereby they that were afar off are made nigh by (Eph. ii. 13, 14 "> that blood, and have (Eph. iv. 7) peace passing all understanding; yea, joy in God through our Lord Jesus Christ, by (Eom. v. 10, 11) whom we have received the atonement. XXXI. All believers in the time of this life, are in a continual (Kom. vii. 23, 24; Eph. vi. 10, 11, 12, 13) warfare and combat against sin, self, the world, and the devil ; and are liable to all manner of afflictions, (Heb. ii. 9, 10 ; 2 Tim. iii. 12) tribulations, and persecutions, being (Eom. viii. 29; • [Edit. 1651, 2, read, "And this ' ["Is a spii-itual grace;" edit. is to be applied by the Spirit through 1651, 2, read, "is a special fruit."] believing."] LONDON CONFESSION. 39 1 Thes. iii. 3; Gal. ii. 19, 20; 2 Cor. v. 7) predestinated and appointed thereunto ; and whatsoever the saints possess or enjoy of God spiritually, is by faith ; and outward and temporal things, are lawfully enjoyed by a civil right by them who have (Deut. ii. 5) no faith. XXXII. The only strength by which the saints are enabled to encounter with all oppositions and (John xvi. 33) trials, is (John XV. 5 ; Phil. iv. 11) only by Jesus Christ, who is the Captain of their salvation, being made perfect through (Heb. ii. 9, 10) sufferings, who hath engaged his faithfulness and and strength to assist them in all their afflictions, and to uphold them in all their temptations, and to preserve them by his power to his everlasting kingdom. (2 Tim. iv. 18) XXXIII. Jesus Christ hath here on earth a spiritual kingdom, (Matt. xi. 11; 2 Thess. i. 15, and 1 Cor. i. 2; Eph. i. 1) which is his church, whom he hath purchased and redeemed to him- self as a peculiar inheritance ; which church is a company of visible saints, (E,om. i. 7 ; Acts xix. 8, 9, and xxvi. 18 ; 2 Cor. vi. 17 ; Rev. xviii. 4) called and separated from the world by the word and (Acts ii. 37, with x. 37) Spirit of God, to the visible profession of the faith of the gospel, (Rom. X. 10 ; Matt, xviii. 19, 20; Acts ii. 42) being baptized into that faith, and joined to the Lord, and each to other, by mutual agreement,' in the (Acts ix. 26 ; 1 Pet. ii. 5) practical enjoyment of the ordinances commanded by Christ their head and king. * [" And glory ;" added in edit. 1651, 2.] ' ["By mutual conaent," edit, 1651, 2.] 40 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. XXXIV. To this church he (Matt, xxviii. 18, 19, 20) hath made his promises, and given the signs of his covenant, (1 Cor. xi. 24, and iii. 21 ; 2 Cor. vi. 18; Kom. ix. 4, 5); presence, accepta- tion, love, (Psal. cxxxiii. 3) blessing, and (Rom. iii. 7, 10) protection. Here are the fountains and springs of his heavenly graces (Ezek. xlvii. 2), flowing fortli to refresh and strengthen them. XXXV. And all his servants of all estates are to acknowledge him to be their prophet, priest, and king; (Acts ii. 41, 47 ; Isa. iv. 3; 1 Cor. xii. 6,7, 12, 18; Ezck. xx. 40, 37) and called thither to be enrolled among his household servants, to pre- sent their bodies and souls, and to bring their gifts [that] God hath given them, to be under his heavenly conduct and govern- ment, to lead their lives in this walled sheepfold, and watered (Cant. iv. 12 ; Eph. ii. 19 ; Rom. xii. 4, 5, 6 ; Col. i. 12, and ii. 5, 6, 19) garden, to have communion here with his saints, that they may be assured that they are made meet to be partakers of their (Acts xx. 32) inheritance in the kingdom- of God ; and to supply each other's wants, inward and out- ward; (and although each person hath a (Acts v. 4) propriety in his own estate, yet they are to supply each other's wants, according as their (Acts ii. 44, 45, and iv. 34, 35) necessities shall require, that the name of Jesus (Luke xiv. 26 ; 1 Tim. vi. 1) Christ may not be blasphemed througli the necessity of any in the church ; and also being come, they are here by himself to be bestowed in their several order, due place, peculiar use, being fitly compact and knit together (Eph. iv. 16) according to the effectual working of every part, to the edifying of itself in love. XXXVI. Being thus joined, every church (Acts i. 23, 26, and vi. 3, LONDON CONFESSION. 41 with XV. 22, 25) hath power given them from Christ, for their well-being, to choose among themselves meet persons for (Rom. xii. 7, 8) elders and deacons,' being qualified accord- ing to the word, (1 Tim. iii. 2, 6, 7, 8 ; 1 Cor. xii. 8, 28; Heb. xiii. 7, 17 ; 1 Pet. v. 1, 2, 3) as those which Christ hath appointed in his Testament, for the feeding, governing, serving, and building up of his church, and that none have any power to (1 Pet. iv. 15) impose on them either these or any other. XXXVII. That the ministers lawfully called, as aforesaid, ought to continue in their calling and place, according to God's ordi- nance, and carefully to feed the flock of God committed to them, not for filthy lucre, but of a ready mind. Heb. v. 4; Joh. X. 3, 4 ; Acts xx. 28, 29 ; Rom. xii. 7, 8 ; Heb. xiii. 7, 17 ; 1 Pet. V. 1, 2, 3. XXXVIII.^ The ministers of Christ ought to have whatsoever they shall need, supplied freely by the church, that according to Christ's ordinance, they that preach the gospel should live of the gospel by the law of Christ. 1 Cor. ix. 7, 14 ; Gal. vi. 8; Phil. iv. 15, 16; 2 Cor. x. 4; 1 Tim. i. 9 ; Psal. ex. 3. XXXIX. Baptism is an ordinance of the (Matt, xxviii. 18, 19 ; John iv. 1 ; Mark xvi. 15, 16 ; Acts ii. 37, 38, and viii. 36, 37, 38, and xviii.) new testament, given by Christ, to be dispensed upon persons professing faith, or that are made disciples; who upon profession of faith,^ ought to be baptized, and after to partake of the Lord's supper. ' [First edit., " Pastors, teachers, ' [" And desiring of it ;" inserted elders, and deacons."] in edit. 1661, 2.] ^ [This article is omitted in the subsequent editions of 1651, 1652 ] 42 tOJ.b'ESSIOXS OF FAITH. XL. That the way aud manner of the (Matt. iii. 6, 16; Mark i. 5, verse 9, reads into Jordan in Greek ; John iii. 23 ; Acts viii. 38 ; Eev. ii. 5, and vii. 14, with Heb. x. 22) dispensing this ordinance, is dipping or plunging the body under water ; it being a sign, [it] must answer the tiling signified, which is, that interest the saints have in the (Rom. vi. 3, 4, 5, 6 ; 2 Cor. XV. 28, 29) death, burial, and resurrection of Christ: and that as certainly as the body is buried under water and risen again, so certainly shall the bodies of the saints be raised by the power of Christ in the day of the resurrection, to reign with Christ.* XLI. The person designed by Christ to dispense baptism, the scripture holds forth to be a disciple ; it being nowhere tied to a particular church oflScer, or person extraordinarily sent, the commission enjoining the administration, being given to them as considered disciples, being men able to preach the gospel. Isa. viii. 16; Epli. iii. 7; Matt, xxviii. 19; John iv. 2; Acts X. 7 ; chap. xi. 20 ; 1 Cor. xi. 24, with 1 Cor. x. 16, 17. XLII. Christ hath likewise given power to his church to receive in and cast out any member that deserves it ; and this power is given to every congregation, and not to one parti- cular person, either member or officer, but in relation to the whole body, in reference to their faith and fellowship. Rom. xvi. 2 ; Matt, xviii. 17 ; 1 Cor. v. 4, 11, 13, with xii. 6, 2, 3; 2 Cor. ii. 6, 7. * The word baptizo signifies to dip [Which is also our practice, as many or plunge, (yet so as convenient gar- eye-witnesses can testify. Edit, ments be both upon the administrator 1651, 2.] tmd subject, with all modesty.) l.ONDON CXJMFESSION. 43 XLIII. And every particular member of each church, how ex- cellent, great, or learned soever, is subject to this censure and judguient: and that the church ought not without great care and tenderness, and due advice, but by the rule of faith,^ to proceed against her members. Matt, xviii. 16, 17, 18 ; Acts xi. 2, 3 ; 1 Tim. v, 19, 20, 2 1 ; Col. iv. 17 ; Acts xv. 1, 2, 3. XLIV. Christ, for the keeping of this church in holy and orderly communion, placeth some special men over the church, who by their office are to govern, oversee, visit, watch ; so like- wise for the better keeping thereof, in all places by the members, he hath given authority, and laid duty upon all to watch over one another. Acts xx. 27, 28 ; Heb. xiii. 17, 24; Matt. xxiv. 45; 1 Thess. v. 2, 14; Jude 3. 20; Heb. x. 34, 35, and xii. 15. XL,V. Also such to whom God hath given gifts in the church may and ought to prophesy, according to the proportion of faith, and so to teach publicly the word of God, for the edification, exhortation, and comfort of the church. 1 Cor. xiv. 3, &c.; Eom. xii. 6; 1 Pet. iv. 10, 11 ; 1 Cor. xii. 7 ; 1 Thes. v: 19^, 20, 21. XL VI. Thus being rightly gathered, and continuing in the obe- dience of the gospel of Christ, none are to sejjarate for faults and corruptions (for as long as the church consists of men ' ["Aud truth," iuserted in edit. 1651, 2.] 44 c:OXFESSIOXS OF FAlTXi. subject to failings, there will be difference in the true con- stituted church) until they have, in due order and tenderness, sought redress thereof. E.ev. ii. and iii. chap.; Acts xv. 12 ; 1 Cor. i. 10; Heb. x. 25; Jude 19.; Rev. ii. 20, 21, 24; Acts XV. 1, 2; Eom. xiv. 1, and xv. 1, 2, 3. XL VII. And although the particular congregations be distinct and several (1 Cor. iv. 17, and xiv. 33, 36, and xvi. 1) bodies, every one as a compact and knit (Psal. cxxii. 3 ; Eph. ii. 12, 19, with Rev. xxi.) city within itself: yet are they all to walk by (1 Tim. iii. 15, and vi. 13, 14; 1 Cor. iv. 17) one rule of truth ; so also they (by all means convenient) are to have the counsel and help (Acts xv. 2, 3 ; Cant. viii. 8, 9 ; 2 Cor. viii. 1, 4, 13, 14) one of another, if necessity require it, as members of one body, in the common faith, under Christ their head. XLVIII. A civil (Rom. xiii. 1, 2, 3, 4 ; 1 Pet. ii. 13, 14 ; 1 Tim. ii. 1, 2, 3) magistracy is an ordinance of God, set up by him for the punishment of evil doers, and for the praise of them that do well ; and that in all lawful things, commanded by them, subjection ought to be given by us in the Lord, not only for wrath, but for conscience' sake ; and that we are to make sup- plications and prayers for kings, and all that are in authority, that under them we may live a quiet and peaceable life, in all godliness and honesty. The supreme magistracy of this kingdom we acknowledge to be the King and Parliament (now established) freely chosen by the kingdom, and that we are to maintain and defend all civil laws and civil officers made by them, which are for the good of the commonwealth : and we acknowledge with thankfulness that God hath made this present king and parliament honourable in throwing down the prelatical hierarchy, because of their tyranny and oppression over us, under which this kingdom long groaned, for which we are l.ONDON CONFESSION. 45 ever engaged to bless God, and honour them for the same. And concerning the worship of God, there is but one Lawgiver, which is able to save and destroy, James iv. 12, which is Jesus Christ, who hath given laws and rules sufficient in his word for his worship ; and for any to make more, were to charge Christ with want of vrisdom or faithfulness, or both, in not making laws enough, or not good enough for his house : surely it is our wisdom, duty, and privilege to observe Christ's laws only, Psa. ii. 6, 9, 1 0, 1 2. So it is the magistrate's duty to tender the liberty of men's consciences, Eccl. viii. 8, (which is the tenderest thing unto all conscientious men, and most dear unto them, and without which all other liberties will not be worth the naming, much less enjoying) and to protect aU under them from all wrong, injury, oppression, and molestation ; so it is our duty not to be wanting in nothing which is for their honour and comfort. And whatsoever is for the well-being of the com- monwealth wherein we live, it is our duty to do ; and we believe it to be our express duty, especially in matters of religion, to be fuUy persuaded in our minds of the lawfulnesss of what we do, as knowing whatsoever is not of faith is sin : and as we cannot do anything contrary to our understandings and consciences, so neither can we forbear the doing of that which our under- standings and consciences bind us to do ; and if the magistrate should require us to do otherwise, we are to yield our persons in a passive way to their power, as the saints of old have done, James v. 4. And thrice happy shall he be, that shall lose his life for witnessing (though but for the least tittle) of the truth of the Lord Jesus Chi-ist, 1 Pet. v.. Gal. v." ° XLIX. But in case we find not the magistrate to favour us herein,' (Acts ii. 40, 41 ; iv. 19; v. 28, 29,41; xx. 23; 1 Thess. iii. 3 ; Phil. i. 28, 29; Dan. iii. 16, 17; vi. 7, 10, 22, 23,) yet we dare not suspend our practice, because we believe we ought to go on in obedience to Christ, in professing the faith which was once delivered to the saints, which faith is declared in the holy scriptures, and this our confession of faith a part of them ; and that we are to witness to the truth of the old and ' [The above remarks were omitted ing way : " That we have great cause in the editions of 1651 and 1652 to bless God and to be thankful for when the king was no longer alive, the peace and liberty we enjoy in the and the government was in the hands service of our God under the present of CromweU.] government ; but if the magistrate " [The two subsequent editions should not favour us herein, yet we commence this article in the follow- dare not," &c., &c.J 46 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. new testament unto the death, if necessity require, in the midst of all trials and afflictions, as his saints of old have done, not accounting our goods, lands, wives, children, fathers, mothers, brethren, sisters ; yea, and our own lives dear unto us, so we may finish our course with joy, remem- bering always, that we ought to (1 Tim. vi. 13, 14, 15; Rom. xii. 1, 8 ; 1 Cor. xiv. 37) obey God rather than men, who will, when we have finished our course and kept the faith, give us (Rev. ii. 20) the crown of righteousness ; to (2 Tim. iv. 6, 7, 8 ; Rom. xiv. 10, 12 ; 2 Cor. v. 10 ; Psa. xlix. 7 ; Psa. 1. 22) whom we must give an account of all our actions, and no man being able to discharge us of the same. It is lawful for a Christian to be a magistrate or civil officer; and also it is lawful to take an oath, so it be in truth, and in judgment, and in righteousness, for confirmation of truth and ending of all strife ; and that by rash and vain oaths the Lord is provoked, and this land mourns. Acts viii. 38; X. 1, 2,35,44; Rom. xvL '23; Deut. vi. 13; Rom. i. 9; 2 Cor. x. 11 ; Jer. iv. 2 ; Heb. vi. 16. [In the first edition, the 49th and 50th articles were as follows. In subse- quent editions, articles 50 and 62 were substituted, on Oaths and a Resurrec- tion. " 49. The supreme magistracy of this kingdom we believe to be the king and parliament, freely chosen by the kingdom ; and that ia all those civil laws which havo been acted by them, or for the present is or shall be ordained, we are bound to yield subjection and obedience unto in the Lord, as conceiving ourselves bound to defend both the persons of those thus chosen, and all civil laws made by them, with cm- persons, liberties, and estates, with all that is called ours, although we should suffer never so much from them in not actively submitting to some ecclesiastical laws, which might be conceived by them to be their duties to establish, which we for the present could not see, nor our con- sciences could submit unto ; yet are we bound to yield our persons to their pleasures. " 50. And if God should provide such a mercy for us, as to incline the mrgis- ti-ates' heai-ts so far to tender our consciences, as that we might be protected by LONDON CONFESSION. 4i them from wrong, injury, oppression, and molestation, which long we foi-merly have groaned under by the tjTauny and oppression of the prelatical hierarchy, which God through mercy hath made this present king and parliament won- derful honourable, as an instrument in his hand, to throw down ; and we thereby have had some breathing time, we shall, we hope, look at aa a mercy beyond our expectation, and conceiTe ourselves further engaged for ever to bless God for it.]" LI. We are to give unto all men whatsoever is their due, as their place, age, and estate require; and that we defraud no man of anything, but to do unto all men as we would they should do unto us. 1 Thess. iv. 6; Eom. xiii. 5, 6, 7 ,- Matt. xxii. 21 ; Tit. iii. ; 1 Pet. ii. 15, 17 ; v. 5 ; Eph. v. 21, 23 ; vi. 1, 9 ; Tit. iii. 1, 2, 3. LII. There shall be a (Acts xxlv. 15; 2 Cor. v. 10; Kom. xiv. 12) resurrection of the dead, both of the just and unjust, and every one shall give an account of himself to God, that every one may receive the things done in his body, according to that he hath done, whether it be good or bad. THE CONCLUSION. Thus we desire to give unto Christ that which is his, and unto all lawful authority that which is their due : and to owe nothing to any man but love, to live quietly and peaceably, as it becometh saints, endeavouring in all things to keep a good conscience, and to do unto every man (of what judgment soever) as we would they should do unto us ; that as our practice is, so it may prove us to be a conscionable, quiet, and harmless people (no ways dangerous or troublesome to human society), and to labour and work with our hands that we may not be chargeable to any, but to give to him that 48 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. needethj both frieads and enemies, accounting it more excel- lent to give than to receive. Also we confess that we know but in part, and that we are ignorant of manj^ things which we desire and seek to know ; and if any shall do us that friendly part to show us from the word of God that we see not, we shall have cause to be thankful to God and them. But if any man shall impose upon us anything that we see not to be commanded by our Lord Jesus Christ, we should in his strength rather embrace all reproaches and tortures of men, to be stripped of ail outward comforts, and if it were possible, to die a thousand deaths, rather than to do anything against the least tittle of the truth of God, or against the light of our own consciences. And if any shall call what we have said heresy, then do we with the apostle acknowledge, that after the way they call heresy, worship we the God of our fathers, disclaiming all heresies (rightly so called) because they are against Christ, and to be stedfast and immovable, always abounding in obedience to Christ, as knowing our latour shall not be in vain in the Lord. PSAL. LXXIV. 21, 22. Arise, O God, plead thine own cause: remember how the foolish man blasphemiet.h thee daily. Oh, let not the oppressed return ashamed, hut let the poor and needy praise thy name. Come, Lord Jesus ! come quickly. FINIS. AN APPENDIX CONFESSION OF FAITH; OR, A MORE FULL DECLARATION OP THE FAITH AND JUDGEMENT OF BAPTIZED BELEEVERS. OCCASIONED BY THE INQUIRY OF SOME WELL-AITBOXED AND GODLY PERSONS IN THE COUNTRY. Written by BENJAMIN COS, a Preacher of the Gospel of Jesus Christ. Published for the further clearing of the Truth, and discovery of their mistake who have imagined a dissent in fundamentals where there is none. Matth. X. 27, 28. What I tel you in darJcness, that speaTc ye in light : aiid what yee hear in the ear, that preach yee wpon the house-tops. And fear not, ibc. LONDON, Pnnted in the year 1R46. (Novemi). 30.) A MORE P0LL DECLARATION OF THE FAITH AND JUDGEMENT OF BAPTIZED BELEEVERS: Be ready always, saith the apostle Peter, to give an answer to every man that ashetli you a reason of the hope that is in you, with meekness and fear, 1 Pet. iii. 1 5. It is therefore our duty, in meekness and love, to give an answer to those godly persons which desire to be fully informed of our judgment concerning religion and the ways of our God. To tliose, therefore, that have expressed a desire to be so informed, I thus answer : — In a book lately reprinted, entitled, " A Confession of Faith of Seven Con- gregations or Churches of Christ in London," &;c., is a plain and sincere ex- pression of our judgment in the things therein spoken of, in 52 Articles : and if our judgment touching some particulars, wherein we seem or are supposed to dissent from some others, do not appear clearly enough in that confession, I hope the same shall somewhat more clearly appear in this ensuing Appendix.' I. We believe that the punishment due to Adam for his first rebellion, and due to aU men for their sin in Adam, and for all their sins against the law, was not a laying of the whole person of man in the dust, or grave, eternally without life or sense ; for then the punishment of man that sinned, should not have differed from the punishment of the brute beast that sinned not. But the punishment due to man, as aforesaid, '[Mr. Cox's name is subscribed to the Confession of 1646. It is there spelt Benjamin Cockes.'] e2 with many other gross enormities, which are too incident to professing people ; and we have cause to fear it is that which hath and doth at this day very deeply wound the truth. Oh! that it might wound our hearts more, and that the hearts of saints might be sighing and crying, not only for the abomina- tions of the profane, but likewise of professing people. These forementioned evils we can say, through grace, that God hath in a measure set home upon our hearts ; but two of them we shall mention more particularly, viz., pride in apparel, and covetousness ; and hath likewise set our hearts in seeking and endeavouring a reformation. And we shall present unto you our light in this matter, covetousness and pride being not only natural sins, but reigning evils, where not discovered and opposed. For the finding out of which evils, that it may be discerned and dealt withal, we judge F 2 68 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. covetousness to consist either, 1 , in getting of goods, and not bv right ; or 2, in an over-eager pursuit of a lawful calling ", or, 3, in a close keeping, when the necessity of the saints calls for it. And for pride and vanity in apparel, we judge that things that are altogether needless and useless, may clearl)' come under the denomination of vanity and pride ; as likewise costly array, when more costly than profitable. These we judge are the symptoms of a vain mind ; and oh ! that the Lord would set it home upon the hearts of all the saints to reform, and that it might become church work to look after those things; for church sins will bring down church afflictions, if not repented of. See Revelation, second and third chapters. As the Lord in his infinite goodness hath purposed to work his people into a conformity to Jesus, that as they have borne the image of the earthly, so they might bear the image of the heavenly man, 1 Cor. XV. 49 ; so it is or should be the longing desire of all the saints that do indeed expect to be like Christ in glory, to be pressing more after a conformity to him here ; 1 John iii. 3, He that hath this hope in him, pm-ifieth himself as he is pure. But how much doth the contrary appear ? Are not many professing men and women in our days rather pressing after the world in its pride and fashions, than after Christ in meekness and holiness ? And we fear that there may be some rising in some good people against a reformation in these things, and we earnestly desire that none may so pursue it, as to adventure the loss of an interest in Christ rather than to part with such lusts as these are, which do indeed war against the soul. But it may be objected that pride consisteth in the heart and not in apparel : persons may be as proud in mean apparel, as others are in costly. We answer, first, it is true it may be so ; yet we have no rule to judge our brethren's heart in such a case. But love should teach us other things, and we do not question but that EPISTLE DEDICATORY. 69 those that are most mortified in this matter, have still ex- perieace of too much pride in their nature. And, secondly, we judge it to be too carnal a way of reasoning, for saints to suppose their brethren may be proud in mean apparel, and from hence resolve to be proud in gay apparel. We desire that Satan may not get such advantage over any of the Lord's people in this thing. Thirdly. We cannot but judge, and that from our own experience in part, that the true cause why there is so much vanity and pride of apparel upon the back is, because the root of all lieth in the heai-t. If it were not in the heart, it it would not appear so much on the back as it doth ; for out of the abundance of the heart the mouth speaketh, and suitably the body actetb. If we see a proud and gay outside, we may easily conjecture where there is a proud heart. Object. We find ourselves in the use of such things not at all pufied up, and therefore we judge it lawful, &c. We answer. First, if it be so in truth, it is the better. But, secondly, we cannot but conceive that as the original of all lieth in the heart 5 so that those that do not know that those needless vain things on the back doth minister occasion to the vain mind to be puffed up, doth not know their own hearts. And it may be discovered in such things as these : — 1. The heart's desiring after and preferring of persons in gay attire, before those in mean. Jas. v. 2. The heart's unwillingness to part with it. A heart never so knows his love to pride in a thing, till he comes to part with it. 3. A heart rising against a reproof of this vanity. Herod heard John the Dipper gladly, till he touched him in his beloved sin. And this reformation proliably may mate many startle, who are glorious in profession; but we hope that Sion's sons and daughters will be willing upon a right in- formation to come to a right reformation. 70 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. Objection. If we should lay aside the fashions of thcworld, we should be slighted amongst the people of the world, pass through shame, be as an owl among birds. None of fashion would care for our company. We answer, first, It is the portion of the followers of Christ to suffer shame iu the world for his sake, and to be slighted of men ; 1 Pet. i. 4, They think it strange that you run not with them to the same excess of riot. And shall any that fear the Lord run with the world to this excess of pride in apparel, that so the world may not think strange of them? God forbid. But secondly. We are in expectation of such a general conviction (from the Lord) amongst the saints in this matter^ that ere long it will be a shame to a saint to be found in Babylon's deckings in the outward man, as well as in spiritual things. But we desire not be tedious. We hope a word to the wise, through the blessing of God, may be enough. Only we commend to you further : — First. That the name of the Lord is much concerned in it. What advantage doth Satan and his instruments take to reproach the truth, from the vanity and pride of professing people in this matter. Secondly. It is a sin that is attended with many other sins, as covetousness, oppression, &c., to maintain it. Thirdly. It is a sin most of all abhorred of God. All that are proud in heart are an abomination to him. He resisteth the proud, but giveth grace to the humble. Fourthly. It was the sin and cause of the condemnation of the devil, 1 Tim. iii. 6. It was the sin and cause of the fall of man from his first estate, Gen. iii. 5, Ye shall be as gods, knowing good and evil; and this prevailed to draw on to dis- obedience. Fifthly, and finally. It is that for which men must stand liable to the burning flame, when the great and terrible day EPISTLE DEDICATORY. 71 of our Lord comes ; which day we believe to be near at hand. When the day cometh that shall burn like an oven, ]\Ial. iv. 1, then proud persons must be the fuel of that fire. Oh ! therefore give us leave to cry aloud unto you to take heed and beware of this sin of pride, both in heart and in the out- ward man. Take heed and beware of covetousness. Take heed and beware of hypocrisy, and of all those abominations by which men are fitted for the everlasting burnings: for even our God is a consuming fire. Object. It may be some may fear they should be accounted covetous by the world, if they should set about such a reform- ation as we here mind. We say that God hath appointed other ways for his people wherein they may give convincing testimonies of their libe- ality ; that is, in clothing the backs and refreshing the bowels of the poor and needy, and not in decking their own backs with needless vanities, and that too, it ma}' be, when the poor and needy are crying for want. Oh ! that it may be your care and ours for the future, to show forth the life and virtues of Christ, by our good works, to the praise and glory of God. 4. Let it be your care to seek after things that make for peace, and things -wherein you may edify one another. Follow peace with all men, and holiness, without which none shall see the Lord, Heb. xii. 14. As God is the God of peace, and Jesus Christ is the Prince of peace, so let the Lord's people manifest themselves to be indeed the sons of peace. But if any be contentious, let no such custom be owned in the churches of Christ. 5. Let it be your care in this evil day to cleave close to the principles of truth, the want of which we judge to be the cause of falling from the truth, souls not being grounded in principles. For we judge that there are such doctrinal princi- ples of truth, left by the Lord unto and wrought In his people, co^TEssIO^■s or faith. that if au augel from heavea should come and preach contrary unto it, they might let him be accursed ; some of which we believe to be, that Jesus Christ crucified was raised again by the power of God, and is the way, the truth, and the life ; that we are justified by faith in his blood ; that a person justi- fied is to live to him and obey him, according to his will in scripture ; that he is ascended into the heavens, and is with the Father, making intercession for his people ; that he will come again, and change and raise his people, and judge, and reign, and rule, &c., and his people shall reign with him, &c. 6. Let it be your care in all things to live holily in this world ; to be holy in all manner of conversation, 1 Pet. i. 15 ; that both you and we may have our conversation in heaven, from whence we look for a Saviour, &c. Phil. iii. 20. 7. Let it be much upon our hearts (to the end that if may be so) to be much in the expectation of, and [inj the exercise of faith on the promises of God, for the pouring foi-th of a greater measure of the Holy Spirit. And, lastly. Oh ! that the glorious appearing and king- dom of our Lord Jesus might be much upon your hearts and ours, which is the blessed hope of saints. Tit. ii. 13. Then what manner of persons should we be in all manner of holy conversation, &c. For he that hath this hope in him purifieth himself, as he is pure, 1 John iii. 3. But lest we should be thought too tedious, we shall proceed no further. Only mind a word to the reader; for his help in the narrative, we have set down for the most part the scriptures between every clause or branch of the article, and most of the scriptures are set down at length. For the benefit of the reader, the articles are in the same letters and characters as this epistle is, and what is in a different character from these, they are the scriptures in proof of the foregoing article. Thus, dear friends, having given some account of the reasons of our publishing this narrative at this time, we com- APPENDIX TO CONFESSION. 73 mend it to you as it is; desiring it may be useful to that end for which it is intended. We have not desired either to follow cunningly devised fables, nor to use the excellency of speech, which man's wisdom teacheth ; but to bring forth the truth of our faith, in the plainness and simplicity of our hearts, and what we believe according to the truth as it is in Jesus ; in^ whose hands we leave it for a blessing upon it to you. Fare ye well. Signed, in the name and by the appointment of the several churches, by us whose names are as followeth : — In the County of Somerset. Of the .church of Christ meeting at Bridgewater, Alexander Atkins, and Tobias "VVells. Of the church meeting at Taunton Thomas Mercer. Of the chm-ch meeting at Ryden, Robert Adridge. Of the church meeting at Hatch, George Parsons. Of the church meeting at Chard, Robert Channon and John Sprake.' Of the church meeting at Somer- ton, William Scriven and WilUam Anger. Of the church meeting at WeUs, David Barret and Thomas Savery . Of the church meeting at Wed- more, Thomas Urch and Richard Coals. Of the chxirch meeting at Stoak, William Hare. Of the church meeting at Wincan- ton, Blaze Allen and Ambrose Brook. Of the church meeting at Munticue, Tho. Bud. In the County of Wilts. Of the church meeting at North Bradley, William Crab and Ni- cholas Elliot. In the County of Devon. Of the church meeting at Luppit, Edmund Eurford and Samuel Ham. In the County of Gloucester. Of the church meeting at Sedbury, • James Nobs. Of the church meeting at Bristol, Henry Hineham. In the County of Dorset. Of the chxirch meeting in and near Lime, Abraham Podger. Thomas Collier. 74 CX3XFESSI0NS OF FAITH. A CONFESSION OF THE FAITH SEVERAL CONGREGATIONS OF CHRIST IN THE COUNTY OF SOMERSET, AND SOME CHURCHES IN THE COUNTIES NEAR ADJACENT. We believe that there Is but one God. 1 Cor. viii. 6. But to us there Is but one God, who is immortal, eternal, in- visible, only wise : 1 Tim. i. 17, Now unto the King, eternal, immortal, invisible, only wise, &c. Holy, Lev. xi. 44, And ye shall he holy, for I am holy. Almighty, Gen. xvii. 1, / am the Almighty God. Infinite, 1 Kings viii. 27, Behold, the heaven and heaven of heavens are not able to contain thee. Isa. xl. 28, There is no searching of his understanding. Ps. cxlvii. 5, Great is our Lord, and of great power, his under- standing is infinite. A. Spirit, John iv. 24, God is a spirit. Glorious in holiness, Exod. xv. 11, Who is like thee glorious in holiness. Just, merciful, gracious, long-suffering, abun- dant in mercy and truth, Exod. xxxiv. 6, 7, The Lord, the Lord God, merciful and gracious, long-suffering, and abundant in goodness and truth. Faithful in all things, Deut. vii. 9 The Lord thy God, he is God, the faithful God. II. That this God, who is so in himself, did according to his own will, in time, create all things by and for Jesus Christ CONFESSION OF SOMKRSETS. 75 Heb. i. 2, By whom also he made the worlds. Col. i. 16, For hy him were all things created that are in heaven, and that are in earth, &c. All things were created by him and for him, John ii. 3. Who is the word of God, John i. 1, In the begin- ning was the tvord, and the word was with God, and the word was God; and upholds all things by the word of his power, Heb. i. 3. III. That God made man after his own image ; Gen. i. 37, So God created man in his own image, in the image of God created lie him. In an estate of righteousness and human perfection ; Eccles. vii. 29, Lo, this only have I found, that God hath made man iipright. IV. That God gave Adam a just law, requiring obedience under the penalty of death; Gen. ii. 17, But of the tree of the knoioledge of good and evil, thou shalt not eat of it, for in the day that thou eatest thereof thou shalt surely die. Which law he brake, and brought himself and his posterity under the guilt and judgment denounced. Gen. iii. 6, And when the woman saw that the tree was good for food, &c., she tooh of the fruit thereof and did eat, ivho gave also unto her husband with her, and he did eat. Horn. v. 12, Wherefore as by one man sin entered the world, and death by sin, and so death passed upon all men, for that all have sinned. Bom. v. 17 — 19, For if by one marHs offence death reigned by one — Thei-efore as by the offence of one judgment came upon all men to condemna- tion — For as by one man's disobedience many were made sinners. V. Man being in this undone estate, God did in the riches of 76 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. his mercy hold forth Christ in a promise; Gen. iii. 15, And I icill put enmity between thee and the woman, and between thy seed and her seed, it shall bruise thy head, and thou shalt bruise his heel. YI. That in process of time God gave forth his laws by the hand of Moses, Exod. xx. ; John i. 17 ; to fallen man, Gal. iii. 19. The law, it icas added because of transgressions, not for justification to eternal life. Gal. iii. 17. Rom. iii. 20, There- fore hy the deeds of the law there shall no flesh be justified in his sight ; but that all might appear guilty before the Lord by it, Rom. iii. 19, Noio toe knoio that what things soever the law saith, it saith to them that are under the law, that every mouth may he stopped, and all the world may become guilty before God. Rom. v. 20, Moreover, the law entered that the offence might abound. VII. That out of this condition none of the sons of Adam were able to deliver themselves, Rom. viii. 3, For what the law could not do, in that it was loeah through the flesh. Eph. ii. 1, 5, And you hath he quickened, loho were dead in trespasses and sins, even when we were dead in si7is hath quickened us together with Christ, by grace ye are saved. Rom. v. 6, For when we were yet loithout strength, Christ died for the ungodly. VIII. That God continued and renewed the manifestation of his grace and mercy in Clirist, after the first promise made in Gen. iii., in other promises. Gen. xxii. 18, with Gen. xii. 3 ; Gal. iii., 16, And in thy seed shall all the nations of the earth he blessed. And in types, as the passover, Exod. xi. 8, And they shall eat the flesh in that night roast with fire, and unleavened bread. And ver. 13, with 1 Cor. v. 7, For even Christ our passover is sacrificed for us. And the brazen serpent. Numb. CONFESSION OF SOMERSKPS. 77 xxi. 9, And Moses made a serpent of brass, and put it upon a pole, and it came to pass that if a serpent had bitten any man, when lie beheld the serpent of brass he lived. Compared with John iii. 14, And as Moses lifted up the serpent in the wilder- ness, even so must the Son of man he lifted up. With the ministry and ministration of Moses and Aaron, the sacrifices, &c., being all figures of Christ, Heb. vii. 8, and chapter ix. And in prophecies, as Isa. ix. 6, For unto us a child is born, unto us a son is given, and the government shall be upon his shoulder, and Ids name shall be called Wonderful, Counsellor, the Mighty God, the Everlasting Father, the Prince of Peace. And Isa. xi. 1, 2, And there shall come forth a rod out of the stem of Jesse, and a branch shall grow out of his roots, and the spirit of tlie Lord shall rest upon him, the spirit of wisdom and understanding, the spirit of counsel and might, the spirit of knowledge and of the fear of the Lord. Isa. liii. 6, All we like sheep have gojie astray, we have turned every one to his oion way, and the Lord hath laid on him the iniquity of us all. Compared with 1 Pet. ii. 24, Who, his own self, bare our sins in his own body on the tree. With 1 Cor. xv. 3, Christ died for our sins according to the scriptures. IX. That God in his Son did freely, without respect to any work done, or to be done by them as a moving cause, elect and choose some to himself before the foundation of the world. Eph. i. 3, 4, According as he hath chosen us in him, before the foundation of the world. 2 Tim. i. 9, Who hath saved us, and called us with an holy calling, not according to our works, but according to his own purpose and grace which was given us in Christ Jesus before the world began. Whom he in time hath, doth, and will call, justify, sanctify, and glorify. Rom. viii. 29, 30, For whom he did foreknow he also did predestinate to be conformable to the image of his Son, that /» CONFRSSIOXS OF FAITH. lie might be the Jirst-born amongst many brethren. Moreover, whom he did predestinate, them he also called; and whom he called, them he also justified ; and ivhom he justified, them he also glorified. X. That those who were thus elected and chosen in Christ, were by nature [before- conversion] children of wrath even as others. Eph. ii. 3, Among whom also we all liad our conversa- tion in times past in tlie lusts of ourjlesh, fulfilling the desires of the flesh and of the mind, and were by nature the children of wrath, even as others. E,om. iii. 9, Wliat then ? Are we better than they? No, in no wise; for we have before proved both Jews and Gentiles, that they are all under sin. XL That those that are chosen of God, called and justified, shall never finally fall from him, but being born from above are kept by the power of God through faith unto salvation. John vi. 39, And this is the Father's will which hath sent me, that of all lohich he hath given me I should lose nothing, but should raise it up again at the last day. John x. 28, And I give unto them eternal life, and they shall never perish, neither shall any man pluch them out of my hand. John xi. 26, And whosoever liveth and believeth in me shall never die. 1 Pet. i. 5, Who are kept by tlie power of God through faith unto sal- vation. Psa. Ixxxix. 30 — 34, If his children forsahe my laios, and walk not in my judgments, if they break my statutes, and keep not my commandments, then will I visit their transgressions with the rod, and their iniquity with stripes. Nevertheless my lovingkindness will I not utterly take from him, nor suffer my faithfulness to fail ; my covenant will I not break, nor alter the thing that is-gone out of my lips. V John iii. 9, Whosoever is CONFESSION or SOMERSETS. 79 horn of God doth not commit sin, for his seed remaineth in him, and he cannot sin, because he is born of God. John xiv. 19, Because I live, ye shall live also. Heb. xii. 2, Looking unto Jesus, the author and finisher of our faith. Jer. xxxi. 3, / hane loved thee with an everlasting love, therefore with loving- kindness have I drawn thee. John x. 29, My Father which gave them me is greater than all, and no man is able to pluck them out of my Father's hand. Psa. xxxvii. 28, For the Lord loveth judgment, and forsaketh not his saints : they are pre- served for ever. Jer. xxxii. 40, And J ivill make an everlast- ing covenant. Horn. viii. 39, Nor height, nor depth, nor any other creature, shall be able to separate us from the love of God, which is in Christ Jesus our Lord. 1 Cor. i. 8, 9, J'Fho shall also confirm you unto the end — God is faithful. Rom. viii. 30, JVhom he justified, them he also glorified. Being con- fident of this very thing, that he which hath begun a good work in you, will perform it until the day of Jesus Christ. Psa. xlviii. 14, For this God is our God for ever and ever, he will be our guide even to death. XII. That wMn the fulness of time was come, God sent forth his Son, made of a woman. Gal. iv. 4, 5, according to the pro- mises and prophecies of the scriptures ; who was conceived in the womb of Mary, the virgin, by the power of the Holy Spirit of God, Luke i. 35 ; Matt. i. 20. And by her born in Bethlehem, Matt. ii. 11; Luke ii. 6, 7. XIII. We believe that Jesus Christ is truly God, Isa. ix. 6, His n,ame shall he called the mighty Gpd. Heb. i. 8,^But unto the Son he saith. Thy throne, O God, is. for ever and ever. Kprp. ix. 5, Who is over all, God blessed for ever. And truly man, of the seed of David. 1 Tim. ii. 5,,Th.ere^ is one mediator 80 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. between God and man, the man Clirist Jesus. Acts xiii. 23, Of this man's seed hath God, according to his promise, raised u7ito Israel a Saviour Jesus. Rom. i. 3, Made of the seed of David according to the flesh. XIV. That after he came to be about thirty years of age, being baptized, he manifested himself to be the Son of God, Luke iii. 21, 23, with John ii. 7, 11 ; the promised Mes- siah, by doing such works both in his life and in his death which were proper unto, and could be done by none but the Son of God, the true Messiah. John i. 49, TTiou art the Son of God, thou art the king of Israel, John vi. 9, &c. XV. That this man, Christ Jesus, suffered death under PUate, at the request of the Jews, Luke xxiii. 24. Bearing the sins of his people on his own body on the cross. 1 Pet. ii. 24, Who his oion self bare our sins in his own body on the tree, according to the will of God. Isa. liii. 6, The Lord hath laid on him the iniquity of us all Being made sin for us ; 2 Cor. V. 11, For he hath made him to be sin for us. And so was also made a curse for us. Gal. iii. 13, 14, Christ hath re- deemed us from the curse of the law, being made a curse for us, 1 Pet. iii. 18, For Christ also hath once suffered for sin, that we might be made the righteousness of God in him. 2 Cor. V. 11. And by his death upon the cross, he hath obtained eternal redemption and deliverance for his church. Col. i. 14, in whom we have redemption through his blood, even the for- giveness of sins. Eph. i. 7, In whom we have redemption through his blood, the forgiveness of sins, according to the riches of his grace. Acts xx. 28, Feed the church of God, which he hath purchased with his own blood. Heb. ix. 12, By his own CONFESSION OF SOMERSETS. 81 blood he entered in once into the holy place, having obtained eternal redemption for us. 1 Pet. i. 18, 19, Forasmuch as ye know ye were not redeemed with corruptible things, &c. but with the precious blood of Christ, as of a lamb without blemish and without spot. XVI. That this same Jesus having thus suffered death for our sins, was buried. Matt, xxvii. 59, 60, And when Joseph had taken the body, he wrapped it in a clean linen cloth, and laid it in his own new tomb, which he had hewn out of the rock, and he rolled a great stone to the door of the sepulcre and departed. And was also raised by the power of God ; Eph. i. 19, And lohat is the exceeding greatness of his power to us-ward who believe, according to the working of his mighty power tvhich he wrought in Christ when he raised him from the dead; the third day according to the scriptures. 1 Cor. xv. 3, 4, For I de- livered unto you first of all that which I also received, how that Christ died for our sins according to the scriptures, and that he was buried, and that he rose again the third day according to the scriptures. For our justification. Rom. iv. 25, Who was delivered for our offences, and was raised again for our justi- fication. XVII. That after he had been seen forty days upon the earth manifesting himself to his disciples. Acts i. 3, To whom h. It^il X. xVrticle. Of preterition, or reprobation. We do believe, tliat known unto God are all his works from eternity ; therefore he foresaw Adam's fall, but did not decree it, yet foreseeing it in his eternal counsel and wisdom, did elect and choose Jesus Christ, and all that do or shall believe in him, out of that fallen lump of mankind ; and hath manifested his love and grace by Jesus Christ, his elect or beloved Son, through the gospel means, to all ; and hath given us his word and oath, to assure us that he desires not tbe death of the wicked, but rather that they repent, or return to him, and live; and if any do perish, their destruction is of themselves : and hath decreed to punish all those wicked, or ungodly, disobedient, and unbelieving or impenitent sinners that have, or shall despise his grace, love, and wooings, or strivings of the Holy Ghost, or long-suffering, whether by a total and continued rejection of grace, or by an universal and final apostacy -, and such persons, so living and dying, shall be punished with everlasting destruction in hell-fire, with the fallen angrels or devils, and shall be fixed in an irrecoverable state of damnation, irrevocable under the wrath of God, they being the proper objects of it ; and shall remain under his inexpressible wrath and justice, in inconceivable torment, soul and body, to all eternity. Acts xv. 18 ; Ezek. xviii. 23, 32, xxxiii. 11; Hos. xiii. 9; Jam. i. 13, 14; 2 Thess. i. 9, 10, ii. 12; Heb. x. 26, &c. ; Isa. xxx. 33, Ixvi. 24; Mark ix. 45, 46; Jude 4; Matt. xxv. 41, 46 ; Rev. xx. 13, 14. XI. Article. Of creation. In the beginning it pleased God, the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost, according to his eternal and immutable decree, for the manifestation of the glory of his eternal power, K 2 132 COXTE-^SIONS OF VAITH. wisdom, and goodness, to create, or make out of nothing, the world, and all things therein, whether visible or invisible; and created man male and female, with a fleshly body, and a reasonable and invisible, or spiritual, angelical, and immortal soul, made after the image of God, in knowledge, righteous- ness, and true holiness, having the law written in his heart, and power or liberty of will to fulfil it, yet mutable, or under a 'possibility of transgi-essing, being left to the liberty of their own will, which was subject to change ; and also gave them command not to eat of the tree of knowledge of good and evil, and while they kept this command, they enjoyed most happy communion with God, and had dominion over the creatures. And all this wonderful work of creation, both in heaven and in earth, was finished in the space of six • days, and all very good, and although reason cannot conceive nor comprehend it, yet God's word hath plainly revealed it, and faith believes it. Gen. i. 1 ; Eom. xi. 36 ; Rev. iv. 11; Heb. xi. 3 ; Col. i. ] 6 : Gen. v. 1, 2, ii. 7 ; Matt. x. 28, xxii. 31, 32 ; Rev. vi. 9 ; Luke xxiii. 46; Acts vii. 59 ; Gen. i. 27, ix. 6 ; Eph. iv. 24 ; Rom. ii. 14, 15 ; Eccles. vii. 29 ; Gen. iii. 6, ii. 16, 17; Gen. i. 1, 2, 31. XII. Article. Of divine providence. The Almighty God, that created all things, and gave them their being, by his infinite power and wisdom, doth sustain and uphold, and move, direct, dispose, and govern all crea- tures and things, from the greatest to the least, according to the counsel of his own good will and pleasure, for his own glory, and his creatures' good. Heb. i. 3; Job xxxviii. 11, xxvi. 7, &c. ; Ps. cxxxv. 5, 6 ; Matt. x. 19, &c. ; Ps. Ixv. 8, &c. ; Eph. i. 11. ORTHODOX CREED. XIII. Article. 133 Of the first covenant. The first covenant was made between God and man, before man had sinned in eating of the forbidden fruit, in which covenant God required of man perfect obedience to all the commands thereof, and in case he did so obey he promised to be his God. And on the other part, man promised to perform entire and perfect obedience to all God's holy com- mands in that covenant, by that strength wherewith God endowed him in his first creation ; by the improvement of which he might have attained unto eternal life, without faith in the blood of the mediator of the new covenant of grace ; but he sinning against this covenant, which consisted in two roots, viz. To lave God above all things, and his neighbour as himself, it being the substance of that law which was after- wards written in two tables of stone, and delivered unto Moses upon mount Sinai ; and fell under the just sentence of eternal death, which was the punishment that God had appointed for the breach of it. And under this righteous judgment of God, Adam and his natural posterity had for ever remained, as the fallen angels do, had not God of his infinite grace and love, provided his Son to take unto him- self our nature, and so became a fit mediator between God the Father, who was offended, and man who had offended him in breaking his holy law and covenant. Hos. vi. 7, viii. 1; Deut. xxvi. 17 — 19; Matt. xxii. 37, 40; Eom. ii. 14, 15; Gen. iii. 12, 13; Deut. xxix. 19—21; Eph. ii. 3; Eom. i. 20, 32; Rom. v. 12, 18; Eph. ii. 13, 14. XIV. Aeticlje. Of the fall of man, of his sin, and of the punishment thereof. The first man Adam, in eating voluntarily of the for- bidden fruit, incurred tJie curse of God upon himself and all 134 (;u.\FESS10NS Ul'" FAl'L'H. his posterity, that came of him by natural propagation, viz. corporal and spiritual death, in body and soul eternally ; but this covenant was not only made with him, but with his seed also, which should descend from his loins by natural genera- tion ; he standing as a public person in the stead of all mankind. And, as St. Paul saith, By him came sin, and death hy sin, &c., and so deprived himself and all his posterity of that original rigliteousncss, which God created him in. Rom. V. 12, 14 ; Geu. iii. 10, 12 ; Eph. ii. 1,3; Rom. v. 15, 16, 17 ; Hcb. vii. 9, 10; Ps. li. 5; Gen. vi. 5; Rom. vii. 7; James i. 14. XV. ARTICLE. Of original, or birth, sin. Original sin, is the fault and corruption of the nature of every man, that naturally descendeth from Adam by natural generation, by means of which, man has not only lost that original righteousness that God created him in, but is na- turally inclined to all manner of evil, being conceived in sin, and brought forth in iniquity ; and, as St. Paul saith. The flesh lusteth against the spirit. And therefore every man justly deserveth God's wrath and damnation. And this con- cupiscence, or indwelling lust, remaineth even in the regene- rate, that they cannot love nor obey God perfectly in this life, according to the tenor of the first covenant. Rom. vii. 21 ; Gen. vi. 5 ; Tit. i. 15 ; Rom. iii. 23 ; Gen. v. 3 ; Jer. xvii. 9 ; Ps. li. 4, 5 ; Job xiv. 4 ; Gal. v. 16, 17 ; 1 Cor. XV. 22 ; Rom. vi. 23 ; Gen. ii. 17 ; John v. 24; Ps. Ixiv. 6 ; GaL iii. 10; Rom. vii. 17, 21, 22, ii. 14, 15 ; Gal. iii. 21, 22; Matt. xii. 33. XVI. Article. Of the new covenant of grace. 'I'bo fii^l covenant licing broken b\- maiiV disobedicncci ORTHODOX CREED. 135 and by his sin, he was excluded from the f'avouf of God, aud etei-nal life, in which deplorable condition of his, God being pleased out of his free grace and love to fallen man, in order to his recovery out of this sinful and deplorable estate, hath freely offered him a second, or a new covenant of grace ; which new covenant of grace is Jesus Christ, in remission of sins, through faith in his blood, which God hath promised to give to all them that do obey and submit to the conditions of this covenant ; which covenant of grace, and eternal salva- tion annexed to it, is freely and fully offered unto all men, upon the terms of the gospel, viz. repentance and faith. And the benefits of this covenant, by God's free grace, through the redemption that is in Jesus Christ, whom God has set forth to be a propitiation through faith in his blood, to declare his righteousness for the remission of sins that are past through the forbearance of God, that he might be just, and the justifier of him that believeth in Jesus. Therefore, we conclude, that a man is justified by faith, without the deeds of the law ; for by faith we receive that righteousness that the law, or the first covenant, required of the first Adam ; which rio-hteousness Christ hath fulfilled in our nature which he took of the virgin Mary, by his active obedience, and is, by God's free donation, made over to us by imputation ; for He hath made him to us wisdom, righteousness, and sancti- fication. For as by one marHs disobedience, many were made sinners, so by the obedience of one, that is Christ, shall many he made righteous. For Christ hath not only fulfilled the sanction of the law, viz., to love God with all his heart, and his neio-hbour as himself, but hath also voluntarily suffered the curse of the law, being made a curse for us, that we mio-ht receive the blessmg of Abraham, and the promise of the Spirit, through faith in his blood. And now, albeit the essential righteousness of Christ, as he is God equal with ' his Father, be not imputed unto u^, nor yet his personal 136 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. righteousnes;, as he was or is man only, yet we believe his mediatorial righteousness as God-man, is imputed, reckoned, or made over to us, upon the terms of this new covenant of grace ; and so being justified by his grace, we are thereby made heirs according to the hope of eternal life : for as St. Paul saith. If righteousness come by the lata, then Christ is dead in vain. Deut. xxvii. 26; Col. i. 13 ; 2 Cor. iv. 4 ; John iii. 16; Jer. xxxi. 31, 32; Eom. iii. 23, 24; Gal. iii. 21, 22: Eom. iii. 31 ; Heb. viii. 7; Gen. iii. 15: Luke xxiv. 47 ; Eph. i. 7 ; Ps. xx. 3 ; Acts x. 43, iii. 19, xxvi, 18, ii. 37, 38; Mark i. 15; Gal. iii. 11, 17; Jer. xxxii. 40; Isa. xlii. 6 ; Eom. iii. 23, &c. ; Acts x. 43 ; Isa. xciii. 1 1 ; Rom. V. 9, iii. 20 : Gal. iii. 8, ii. 16 : Eom. v. 10, 19, x. 4; Matt. iii. ; 2 Cor. V. 21 ; 1 Cor. i. 30 ; Gal. iii. 1-3 ; 1 Pet. ii. 24 ; Isa. liii. 6, 7, 8 ; Phil. ii. 7, 8: Gal. iii. 13, 14; Heb. vii. 26; Matt. iii. 15 ; Eom. v. 18 ; Gal. iv. 6, 7 ; Eom. iv. 3, 4, 23, iii. 25, 28 : Tit. iii. 7, i. 2. XVII. Aktxcle. Of Christ and his mediatorial office. It pleased God, in his eternal purpose, to choose and ordain the Lord Jesus Christ, his only begotten Son, accord- ing to the covenant made between them both, to be the alone mediator between God and man, viz., God the Father, who was by Adam's sin justly offended, and Adam our common parent, the person offending. Now, in order to reconcile God to man, and man to God, who were at a distance, Christ Jesus, the second person in the Trinity, being very God, of the same substance with his Father, did, when the fulness of time was come, take unto him roan's nature, with all the essential properties and common in- firmities, sin only excepted, being made of a woman, of the seed of Abraliam and David: and although lie came from ORTHOUOX CREED. 137 Adam, and liad truly the nature of man, yet not by Adam ; and the person of Christ took our nature into union with the divine nature, but he did not take the person of Adam which sinned, therefore we believe he was neither the covenantee, nor yet the covenanter, and so, by consequence, neither the creditor nor the debtor. And being concerned by this office, or appointment of the Father, to make peace, it plainly appears, that he is the only fit mediator between God and man, who is very God, and very man ; yet one Christ, who was sanctified, and anointed with the Holy Spirit above measure, and was superlatively and admirably fitted for and called unto this office by his Father, who put all judgment into his hand, and power to execute the same; and he willingly undertook the same, and being made under the law, did perfectly fulfil or keep it, and underwent the punishment due to us, which we should have suffered ; our sin, and the punishment of it being reckoned or imputed to him, he being made a curse for us ; and underwent and trod the winepress of his Father's wrath for us, in dolorous pangs and agony of soul, and painful sufferings in his body ; was crucified, dead, and buried, or remained in the state of the dead, yet saw no corruption, and on the third day he arose from the dead, with the same body in which he suffered, with which he also ascended, and there sitteth at the right hand of his Father, making intercession for his saints, and shall return to judge men and angels at the end of the world. And the same Lord Jesus, by his perfect obedience to the whole law, and sacrifice of himself, which he, through the eternal Spirit oflTered up unto God the Father, hath fully satisfied the justice of God, and reconciled him to us ; and hath purchased an everlasting inheritance in the kingdom of heaven for all those that the Father hath given unto him, and now, by a continued act of intercession in heaven, doth api)lv the benefits he hath purchased unto tlie elect. And in 138 COXFESSIOXS OF FAITH. this office of mcJiatov, he liath the dignity ol' three offices, viz., priest, prophet, and king: all which offices arc necessary for the benefit of his churcii, and witjiout which we can never be saved. For in respect of our ignorance, we stand in need of his prophetical office, and in respect of our alienation from God, and imperfect services, and God's wrath and justice, we stand in need of his priestly office, to reconcile God to us and us to God ; and in respect of our bondage to sin and Satan, and averseness to return to God, we need his kingly office to subdue our enemies, and deliver us captives out of the kingdom and power of sin, and preserve us to his heavenly kingdom. And thus, in our nature, he living the life of the law, and suffering the penalty due to us, con- tinually presents us ,at the throne of grace ; so is a most wonderful and complete mediator for his elect, Zech. vi. 12, 13; Gal. iii. 17 ; Psa. Ixxix. 28, cis. 10 ; Gal. iii. 19, 20 : Heb. X. 15, xii. 24; 1 Tim. ii. 5; Job ix. 33; any days-man be- twixt us, &c. ; Gal iii. 16; Gen. iii. 15 ; 1 Chron. xvii. 11 ; Luke i. 35 ; Heb. vii. 26; Eom. ix. 5; Heb. v. 5, vii. 21; &c. ; Eph. ii. 14; Psa. xlii. 1, 6 ; 1 Pet i. 19, 20; Heb. ix. 15, i. 9; Psa. xlv. 7; Isa. Lxi. 1; Col. ii. 3; Heb. v. 5; John V. 22, 27; Eom. 10, 4 ; 2 Cor. v. 21; Gal. iii. 13; Luke xxii. 44, 45 ; Isa. liii. 10, 11, 12; 1 Pet. ii. 24 ; Matt, xxvii. 46, xxvi. 37, 38 ; Acts xiii. 28, &c. ; Luke xxiv. 7 ; John XX. 25, 27 ; Acts i. 9, 10, 1 1 ; Mark xvi. 1 9 ; Rom. viii. 34 ; Matt. XXV. 31, &c.; Heb. Lx. 14, 15 ; Eph. ii. 14, &c. ; John xvii. 2 ; 1 Pet. i. 2, &c. ; Heb. vii. 17 ; Acts iii. 22 ; Psa. xlv. 5, &c. ; Acts iv. 11, 12 ; 2 Tim. iv. 18 ; Col. i. 13, 14 ; Heb. iv. 14, &c. XVIII. Article. Of Christ dying for all mankind. God the Father, out of his royal bounty and fountain of ORTHODOX CllEED. 139 love, when all mankind was fallen by sin, in breaking of the first covenant of works made with them in Adam, did choose Jesus Christ, and sent h'ur. into the world to die for Adam, or fallen man. And God's love is manifest to all mankind, in that he is not willing, as himself hath sworn, and abundantly declared in his word, that mankind should perish eternally, !nit would have all to be saved, and come to the knowledge of the truth. And Christ died for all men, and there is a sufficiency in his death and merits for the sins of the whole world, and hath appointed the gospel to be preached unto all, and hath sent forth his Spirit to accompany the word, in order to beget repentance and faith : so that if any do perish, it's not for want of the means of grace manifested by Christ to them, but for the non-improvement of the grace of God, offered freely to them through Christ in the gospel. Rom. v. 8 ; Matt. xx. 28 ; E.om. viii. 3 ; Heb. ix. 15 ; Ezek. xviii. 23 ; Heb. ii. 9; 1 John ii. 2 ; 1 Tim. ii. 3, &c.; Heb. x 12, &c. ; Mark xvi. 16 ; Tit. ii. 11, 12 ; 1 Thess. i. 5, 6, 7 ; John v. 39, 40; Matt, xxiii. 37, 38, xxiv. 12; Acts xiii. 46, 48. XIX. Article. Of the agreement between tlie Old and New Testament. The gospel, or new covenant, was held forth or preached to the fathers, from Adam to Christ's coming in the flesh, though it was revealed by sundry degrees, and in diverse manners, in types and shadows, darkly ; yet it was the same gospel, the same Christ, the same faith for kind, and the very same covenant that they were justified and saved by, before Christ took flesh of the virgin, that we have now, and is to continue to the end of the world. For as the church of the Jews, in their gospel types, had a priest, and an altar. 140 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. ft aud a laiiib, and a fire, and without all these no sacrifice could, or was accepted of God^ then, or now, without faith in the anti-tvpe, Christ, whose human nature is the true Iamb, the union of natures, the high priest, the divine nature, the altar, and the Holy Ghost, the heavenly fire. And again : The blood shed upon tlie brazen altar may be applied to our justification, and the sprinkling of it upon the incense altar may be applied to the work of sanctification by Christ's Spirit, sprinkling his blood upon us. And the blood that was carried within the vail, into the most holy place, is ap- plied to our glorification in heaven. And as they had in their church the ark, a figure of Christ's presence, so have we the promise of his presence to the end of the world. And as they had the tables of the old covenant or law, in the ark, so have we the law fulfilled by Christ ; and meeting God in Christ, it's handed forth by Christ now to us, as the only rule of our sanctification and obedience through his grace. And as they had the manna to nourish them in the wilderness to Canaan, so have we the sacraments, to nourish us in the church, and in our wilderness condition, till we come to heaven. And as they had the rod that corrected them, so have we the church censures now to correct us, when we offend his law ; and their burnt offerings may be applied to Christ, killing of original sin in us; and their sin offerincr may be applied to Christ, killing, or taking away our actual sins ; and their peace ofiering may be applied to our recon- ciliation with God in Christ by his Spirit ; and so all the rest of those gospel anti-types may be applied. And thus the Old and New Testaments, like the faces of the cherubim, look one toward another, and hold forth the self-same gospel sal- vation to them and us. Gal. iii. 8 ; Gen. xii. 3 ; Heb. iv. 2, 3, i. 1, 2, X. 1 ; Heb. ix. 10, and xi. chap. ; Heb. ix. 14 ; Eph. V. 2 ; 1 Pet. i. 2 ; Heb. ix. 7, &c. ; Matt, xviii. 20, xxviii. ORTHODOX CREED. 141 19, 20; Rom. iii. 31, viii. 3, 4, x. 4 ; 1 John ii. 6, 7, 8; James Iv. 12 ; John xvi. 14, 15 ; 1 Cor. iv. 19, &c. XX. Article. Of free-will in man. Grod hath endued the will of man with that natural liberty and power of acting upon choice, that it is neither forced, nor by any necessity of nature determined, to do good or evil ; but man, in the state of innocency, had such power and liberty of will to choose and perform that which was accept- table and well pleasing to God, according to the requirement of the first covenant ; but he falling from his state of inno- cency, wholly lost all ability, or liberty of will, to any spiritual good for his eternal salvation, his will being now in bondage under sin and Satan, and therefore not able of his own strength to convert himself, nor prepare himself there- unto, without God's grace taketh away the enmity out of his will, and by his special grace freeth him from his natural bondage under sin, enabling him to will freely and sincerely that which is spiritually good, according to the tenure of the new covenant of grace in Christ; though not perfectly, according to the tenure of the first covenant, which perfec- tion of will is only attainable in the state of glory, after the redemption, or resurrection of our fleshy bodies. Matt, xvii. 12 ; Eccles. vii. 29 ; E.ora. v. 6, viii. 7, 8; John viii. 44; Eph. ii. 8, &c.; Phil. ii. 13; Eom. vii. 14, &c., viii. 23; Eph. iv. 13. XXL Article. Of vocation and effectual calling. Vocation, or calling, general or common, is, when God by the means of his word and Spirit, freely of his own grace and 142 CONFESSIONS or FAITH. goodness, doth ministerially acquaint mankind with his gracious good purpose of salvation, by Jesus Christ; inviting and wooing them to come to him, and to accept of Christ, revealing unto them the gospel covenant; and those that with cordial hearts do improve this common grace, he in time worketh unfeigned faith and sincere repentance in them ; and by his grace they come to accept of Christ as their only Lord and Saviour, with their whole heart, and God becomes their father in Christ, and they being then effectually called, are by faith united to Jesus Christ by grace unto salvation. Matt. xi. 28; Acts xx. 21 ; E.om. xvi. 25, 26; Tit. ii. 11 ; Acts v. 31, xi. 18 ; Rom. viii. 28, 30, xi. 5, 7 ; Eph. i. 11, &c. ; Rom. v. 1 ; Eph. ii. 8 ; Rom. iv. 16. XXII. Article. Of evangelical repentance. Unfeigned repentance is an inward and true sorrow of heart for sin, with sincere confession of the same to God, especially that we have offended so gracious a God and so loving a father, together with a settled purpose of heart, and a careful endeavour to leave all our sins, and to live a more holy and sanctified life, according to all God's commands. Or it is a turning, or change of the whole man to God, with en- deavour through his grace to mortify the indwelling lust or corruptions, and obtain a great reformation both in the out- ward and inward man, according to the wiU of God; and this repentance, for the nature of it, must be continued through- out the whole course of our lives, and is wrought in us by the Spirit of God, by the ministry of the law and gospel, in order to our obedience to Christ, or being baptized in his name. But this repentance unto life is not wrought without faith in the soul ; for by faith we receive that grace that per- fects or carrieth on the work of repentance in the soul, from ORTHODOX CREED. 143 first to last. Tit. ii. 3—5 ; Acts ii. 37, 38 ; 2 Cor. vii. 10, 1 1 ; Acts xvii. 30 ; Ps. Ii. 4 ; Luke xv. 17, &c. ; Ezek. xviii. 30; Eph. ii. 10; Rom. viii. 13 ; Eph. iv. 20, &c. ; John viii. 31, &c. ; Rom. viii. 13; 1 Thess. i. 5,6; Acts iii. 19, 26, ii. 38 ; Heb. xi. 6 ; Gal. iii. 26, &c. XXIII. Article. Of justifying and saving faith. Faith is an act of the understanding, giving a firm assent to the things contained in the holy scriptures. But justify- ing faith is a grace, or habit, wrought in the soul by the Holy Ghost through preaching the word of God, whereby we are enabled to believe not only that the Messias is offered to us, but also to take and receive him as a Lord and Saviour, and wholly and only to rest upon Christ for grace and eternal salvation. Rom. x. 14, 1 7 ; Matt. xiii. 20, 2 1 ; Acts xxiv. 14 ; Ps. xix. 7, &c., cxix. 72 ; 2 Pet. i. 1 ; 1 John v. 4, 5 ; 2 Cor. iv. 13 ; Eph. ii. 8; Acts xxxi. 31, xv. 11 ; 2 Pet. i. 5, 1 1 ; Phil. iii. 8, 9 ; Acts viii. 37. XXIV. Article. Of justification hy Christ. Justification is a declarative or judicial sentence of God the Father, whereby he of his infinite love and most free orace, for the alone and mediatorial righteousness of hia own Son, performed in our nature and stead, which righteousness of God-man the Father imputing to us, and by effectual faith received and embraced by us, doth free us by judicial sentence from sin and death, and accept us righteous in Christ our surety unto eternal life; the active and passive obe- dience of Christ being the accomplishment of all that righte- ousness and sufferings the law or justice of Christ required ; 144 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. and this being perfectly perfonned by our Mediator in the very nature of us men, and accepted by the Father in our stead, ac- cording to that eternal covenant transaction between the Father and the Son. And hereby we have deliverance from the guilt and punishment of all oiu: sins, and are accounted righteous before God, at the throne of grace, by the alone righteousness of Christ the Mediator, imputed or reckoned unto us through faith ; for we believe there are six necessary causes of man's justification or salvation, viz. : First, The efficient cause of our justification is God's free grace. Se- condly, The meritorious cause is the blood of Christ. Thirdly, The material cause is Christ's active obedience. Fourthly, The imputation of Christ, his obedience for us, is the formal cause. Fifthly, The instrumental cause is faith. Sixthly, God|s glory and man's salvation is the final cause. Now we principally apply the first and last to God the Father ; the second and third to Christ the Mediator ; the fourth and fifth to the blessed Comforter, the Holy Ghost ; hence it is we are baptized in the name of the Father, of the Son, and Holy Ghost, and so we worship a trinity in unity, and unity in trinity. Acts xiii. 38, 39 ; B,om. viii. 34, 35, iii. 23, &c., iv. 22, &c. ; 1 Cor. i. 30, 31 ; 2 Thess. i. 3,4; Acts XV. 9; Gal. v. 6; Eom. viii. 1, iv. 6 — 8 ; Gal. iii. 13, 14; John V. 24; Kom. iii. 22, 30, v. 19; 2 Cor. i. 30; Eph, i. 1 ; Rom. v. 9, x. 4 ; Gal. iii. 13 ; Heb. ii. 9, &c. ; 2 Cor. V. 21 ; Isaiah liii. 10,' &c.; Rom. iii. 24, Rom. v. 9, v. 19, iv. 6, V. 1; Eph. i. 11, 12; Matt, xxviii. 19; 2 Cor. xiii. 14; 1 John V. 7. XXV. Article. Of reconciliation and sonship hy Christ. Two privileges flow out of our justification by faith in ' Christ, viz., our reconciliation, and adoption, or sonship. ORTHODOX CKEED. 145 Reconciliation is a gracious privilege, whereby we that were enemies are made friends ; or, we that were enemies, rebels, and aliens, are received into favour, or brought near to God through faith in Christ Jesus. And adoption is that power and privilege to be the sons of God, through faith in Christ our surety, who being the eternal Son of God, became by incarnation our brother, that by him God might bring many sons unto glory, according to his eternal decree of preserving the human nature of Christ, that it never fell in Adam. And so we are by faith, according to God's free grace, and Christ's purchase, or redemption, and the Holy Spirit's appli- cation of it to us, made heirs and joint heirs with Christ, our elder brother, of the same kingdom, and stupendous and unutterable glory, for ever and ever. Rom. v. 8, &c. ; Eph. ii. 12, &c., i. 5 ; GaL iv. 4, 5, 6 ; Rom. viii. 16, 17 ; Heb. ii. 10, &c., iv. 15 ; Matt. i. .18 ; Heb. vii. 26 ; Rom, viii. 16, 17. XXVI. Article. Of sanctification and good works. Those that are united unto Christ by effectual faith, are regenerated, and have a new heart and spirit created in them, through the virtue of Christ's death, resurrection, and in- tercession, and by the efScacy of the Holy Spirit, received by faith, and are sanctified by the word and Spirit of truth, dwelling in them, by destroying and pulling down the strong- holds or dominion of sin and lust, and more and more quickened and strengthened in all saving graces, in the practice of holiness, without which no man shall see the Lord. And this sanctification is throughout the whole man, though imperfect in this life, there abiding still in the best saints, some remnants of corruption, which occasions a con- tinual war in the soul, the fiesh lusting against the Spirit, and 146 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. the Spirit against the flesh ; yet through ^the continual sup- ply of strength from Christ, which flows from him to be- lievers by means of the covenant of grace, or hypostatical union with our nature, the regenerate part doth overcome, pressing after a heavenly life, in evangelical obedience to all the commands that Christ, their king and law-giver, hath commanded them in his word, or holy scriptures, which are the only rule and square of our sanctification and obedience in good works and piety. And sith our only assistance to good works, such as God hath commanded, is of God, who worketh in us both to will and to do, we have no cause to boast, nor ground to conclude we merit anything thereby, we receiving all of free and undeserved grace, and when we have done the most yet we are unprofitable servants, and do abundantly fall short; and the best duties that we can now perform will not abide the judgment of God. Neither do any good works whatsoever, that are done by unregene- rate men, or without faith in and love to Christ, please God, or are accepted of him. Yet good works are of great ad- vantage, being done in faith and love, and wrought by the Holy Spirit, and are to be done by us, to show our thank- fulness to God for the grace of the new covenant by Christ, and to fit us more and more for glorj'. And in this sense the ten commandments, as handed forth by Christ the mediator, are a rule of life to a believer, and show us Our duty to God and man, as also our need of the grace of God and merit of Christ. Ezek. xxxvi. 26; Eph. iv. 24; 2 Cor. v. 17; 1 John iii. 9 ; Tit. iii. 5 ; 1 Cor. iv. 15 ; 2 Cor. iii. 18 ; 1 Tim. ii. 20; Psa. ex. 3; 2 Cor. x. 4, 5, v. 17 ; John xvii. 17, xvi. 14, 15; Heb. xii. 14; Rom. vii. 20; Gal. v. 16, 17; 1 John iii. 8, ii. 20; E,om. vi. 14; Eph. iv. 15; 2 Cor. iii. 18, vii. 1 ; Psa. cxii. 1, cxix. 48 ; John xv. 4, 6 ; Isa. xliii. 13, xxvi. 12; PhU. ii. 13; 2 Cor. iii. 5; Job ix. 2, 3, 20, XXV. 4; Gal. ii. 16; James ii. 9, 10, iii. 2; Heb. xi. 6; ORTHODOX CREED. 147 Isa. Ixiv. 6; Prov. riii. 17; 1 Cor. xvi. 22; James i. 18, &c. ; Gal. V. 22, 23 ; John iv. 14, v. 25 ; Gal. v. 6 ; 1 Cor. vL 9, &c. ; 'Heb. xii. 28, 29 ; 1 Cor. xiii. 2, 3 ; Psa. 1- 14. XXVn. Article. Of baptism and the LordCs supper. These two sacraments, viz., baptism and the Lord's supper, are ordinances of positive, sovereign, and holy institution, appointed by the Lord Jesus Christ, the only lawgiver, to be continued in his church to the end of the world ; and to be administered by those only who are rightly qualified, and thereunto called, according to the command of Christ. Matt, xxviii. 19, 20; 1 Cor. xi. 26, iv. 1. XXVIII. Article. Of the right subjects and administration of holy baptism. Baptism is an ordinance of the New Testament, ordained by Jesus Christ, to be unto the party baptized or dipped, a sign of our entrance into the covenant of grace, and in- grafting into Christ, and into the body of Christ, which is his church ; and of remission of sin in the blood of Christ, and of our fellowship with Christ in his death and resurrec- tion, and of our living or rising to newness of life. And orderly none ought to be admitted into the visible church of Christ, without being first baptized; and those which do really profess repentance towards God, and faith in and obedience to our Lord Jesus Christ, are the only proper subjects of this ordinance, according to our Lord's holy insti- tution, and primitive practice ; and ought by the minister, or administrator, to be done in a solemn manner, in the name of the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost, by immersion or dipping of the person in the element of water; this being L 2 148 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. necessary to the due administration of this holy sacrament, as holy scripture showeth, and the first and best antiquity witnesseth for some centuries^ of years. But the popish doctrine which they teach and believe, that those infants that die without baptism, or have it not actually, or in desire, are not, nor cannot be saved, we do not believe. Nor yet their practice of admitting persons only upon an implicit faith of the church, nor their superstitious and popish ceremonies of salt and spittle, and breathing on the face of the party baptized, together with their chrisms and hallowed lights.* Neither do we believe, that infants dying in infancy, without baptism, go to purgatory or limbus infantum, as they er- roneously teach. Nor do we believe that the pope of Rome, or any other persons whomsoever, have power to alter or change this ordinance of Christ, as they have done by this superstitious and such like idolatrous inventions and practices of the Romish church. All which superstitions of theirs are contrary to Christ's institution, or the apostles' practice of holy baptism. Rom. vi, 3, 4, 5 ; 1 Cor. xii. 13; Gal. iii. 27; Markxvi. 16; Matt. iii. 11; Acts ii. 38; Rom. vi. 1, &c. ; Matt, xxviii. 19 ; Acts viii. 37 ; Matt. iii. 6 ; Heb. vi. 1, 2; Acts ii. 37, 38, viii. 35, 36, &c.; Matt, xxviii. 19; John i. 2, 8, 31, iii. 22, 23 ; Mark L 9, 10. XXIX. Article. Of the invisible catholic church of Christ. There is one holy catholic church, consisting of, or made up of the whole number of the elect, that have been, are, or shall be gathered in one body under Christ, the only head thereof; which church is gathered by special grace, and the ' See Mr. H. Danver's Treatise of * See the Popish Catechism, p. 184, Baptism. &c. ORTHODOX CREED. 149 powerful and internal work of the Spirit ; and arc effectually united unto Christ their head, and can never fall away. Heb. xii. 22, 23; Rev. xiv. 1, &c. ; Col. i. 18; Eph. i. 10, 22, V..23, 26, 27; John x. 16; Gal. iii. 28; Psa. Ixxii. 17, cii. 28 ; Rev. xiii. 8. XXX. Article. Of the catholic church as visible. Nevertheless, we believe the visible church of Christ on earth is made up of several distinct congregations, which make up that one catholic church or mystical body of Christ. And the marks by which she is known to be the true spouse of Christ are these, viz., where the word of God is rightly preached, and the sacraments truly administered, according to Christ's institution and the practice of the primitive church ; having discipline and government duly executed by ministers or pastors of God's appointing, and the church's election, that is a true constituted church ; to which church, and not elsewhere, all persons that seek for eternal life, should gladly join themselves. And although there may be many errors in such a visible church, or congregation, they being not infallible, yet those errors being not fundamental, and the church in the major, or governing part, being not guilty, she is not thereby unchurched; nevertheless she ought to detect those errors, and to reform, according to God's holj' word, and from such visible church, or congrega- tion, no man ought by any pretence whatever, schismatically to separate. Gal. iii. 26, &c. ; Acts ii. 41, &c. ; Eph. ii. 19, &c. ; 1 Cor. xi. 23, &c. ; Gal. iii. 1 ; Eph. iii. 21 ; Acts xviii. 8; 1 Cor. xii. 13; 1 John iL 19; Rev. ii. 2, 14, &c. ; Tit. iii. 10, 11 ; Jude 17, 18, 19; Jam. iii. 13, &c.; 1 Tim. iv. 1 ; 2 Tim. i. 13, &c. ; Acts xx. 29, &c. ; 1 Cor. xii. 2.5. 150 CXJNFESSIONS OF FAITH. XXXI. Aeticle. Of officers in the church of Christ. The visible cliurch of Christ, being completely gathered and organised, according to the mind of Christ, consists of officers and members ; and the officers, appointed by Christ to be chosen by his church, for the peculiar administration of ordinances, and execution of the power and duty Christ hath enjoined them to the end of the world, are these three, viz. bishops,* or messengers; and elders, or pastors; and deacons, or overseers of the poor ; and the way appointed by Christ, for the calling of any person fitted and gifted by the Holy Ghost, unto the office of bishop or messenger, in the churches, is, viz., that he be chosen thereunto by the common suffrage of the church, and solemnly set apart by fasting and prayer, with imposition of hands, by the bishops of the same function, ordinarily; and those bishops, so or- dained, have the government of those churches that had suffrage in their election, and no other ordinarily ; as also to preach the word or gospel to the world, or unbelievers. And the particular pastor, or elder, in like manner is to be chosen by the common suffrage of the particular congregation, and ordained by the bishop or messenger God hath placed in the church he hath charge of; and the elder, so ordained, is to watch over that particular church ; and he may not minis- terially act in any other church before he be sent ; neither ought his power or office any way to infringe the liberty, or due power, or office of his bishop,° God being a God of order, having ordained things most harmoniously, tending every way to unity. The deacons are in like manner to be chosen by election and ordination, and are in their particular congregations to receive the charity and free benevolence of •■ See the EIKQN BASIAIKH. p. 149, to p. 160. ' Or ovei'seer, or shepherd. OK.THODOX CREED. 151 the people. And the bishops and elders so chosen and or- dained to the work of God, ought to be enabled and capaci- tated thereunto, by a sufficient and honourable maintenance of the people that chose them, answerable to the dignity of their places and charge committed to them, without which they cannot discharge their duty as they ought to do, in studying to divide the word of God aright, as St. Paul adviseth Timothy, and also to give themselves wholly to it ; and this maintenance is to be given out of the labours, profits, and estates of the people, by equality, and proportionable to their ability, in liberality, God having reserved a portion for all his labourers out of all the members' worldly goods and posses- sions. Acts i. 20, xiv. 23, &c.; xiii. 2, 3; xiv. 23; xx. 17, 18; vi. 3- — 6; i. 23, 24, &C.; ^uporovriaavTtQ Se avroTg TrptajivT^povc Kor' iKicXticriav wpousv^d/isvoi, &c. Quumque ipsis per suffragia, &c. 1 Tim. i. 3 ; Tit. i. 5; Rev. ii. 1, 2, &c.; Matt, xxviii. 19 ; Mark xvi. 16 ; Acts i. 22 ; 2 Tim. iv. 2 ; Acts xiv. 23 ; Rom. X. 1.5 ; Acts xiii. 2 — 4 ; 1 Cor. xvi. 16 ; 1 Tim. i. 3 ; Acts XX. 28; 1 Cor. xi. 34 ; Tit. i. 5; Heb. xiii. 17; 1 Cor. xiv. 33 ; Acts vi. 1, 2, &c.; 1 Tim. iii. 8, &c. ; 1 Cor. iii. 9; 1 Tim. iii. 5, iv. 6, 16 : 2 Thn. iv. 5 ; Tit. i. 7 ; 1 Cor. ix. 1, &c.; Phil. iv. 15, &c. ; 1 Tim. v. 17, 18 ; Gal. vi. 6, 10 ; Deut. XXV. 4 ; 2 Cor. xi. 7, 8 ; J Tim. iii. 5, &c. ; xi. 13, &c.; 2 Tim. 1, 2, &c.; iii. 14, &c. ; iv. 1, 2, 5; Col. iv. 11, 17 ; 2 Cor. viii. 1 2, &c. ; 2 Cor. ix. 5, 6, &c. XXXII. Ajrticle. Of prayer, toith laying on of hands. Prayer, with imposition of hands by the bishop, or elder, on baptized believers, as such, for the reception of the holy promised Spirit of Christ, we believe is a principle of Christ's doctrine, and ought to be practised and submitted to by every baptized believer, in order to receive the promised Spirit of the 152 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. Father and Son. Acts viii. 12, &c. ; xix. 6, 7 ; 2 Tim. i. 6,7; Heb. vi. 2; John xiii. 16, &c. ; xvi. 7; Eph, i. 13, 14; 2 Tim. i. 6 ; Acts ii. 38, 39. XXXIII. Article. Of the end and right administration of the Lord's sujoper. The supper of the Lord Jesus was instituted by him the same night wherein he was betrayed ; to be observed in his church to the end of the world, for the perpetual remembrance and showing forth the sacrifice of himself in his death ; and for the confirmation of the faithful believers in all the benefits of his death and resurrection, and spiritual nourishment and growth in him, sealing unto them their continuance in the covenant of grace; and to be a band and pledge of communion with him, and an obligation of obedience to Christ, both pass- ively and actively, as also of our communion and union each with other, in the participation of this holy sacrament. And the outward elements of bread and wine, after they are set apart by the hand of the minister, from common use, and blessed, or consecrated, by the word of God and prayer, the bread being broken and wine poured forth, signify to the faithful, the body and blood of Christ, or holdeth forth Christ and him crucified ; and the minister distributing the bread and wine to the communicants, who are to take, or receive, both the bread and wine at the hands of the minister, apply ino- it by faitli, with thanksgiving to God the Father for so great a benefit ; and no unbaptized, unbelieving, or open profane, or wicked heretical persons, ought to be admitted to this or- dinance to profane it. Luke xxii. 17, &c.; Matt. xxvi. 26, &c.; 1 Cor. xi. 23, &c.; Matt, xxviii. 20 ; Gal. iii. 1 ; 1 Cor. X. 16, 17 ; Gal. iii. 1 ; 1 Cor. xi. 27, &c.; Matt. xxvi. 30 ; 1 Cor. V. 7, 8, 13; Acts ii. 41, &c. ORTHODOX CREED. 153 Neither is that popish doctrine of transubstantiation to be admitted of, nor adoration of the unbloody sacrifice of the mass, as they call it, together with their denying of the cup to the laity, and many more idolatrous and superstitious prac- tices, decreed in the popish councils of Lateran and Trent. In opposition to which, and such like idolatry of Rome, many of our worthy and famous ancients, and renowned protestants, lost their lives by fire and faggot in England, whose spirits we hope are now in heaven, as worthy martyrs and witnesses of Christ, in bearing a faithful testimony to this holy ordinance of their Lord and master. Neither may we admit of consub- stantiation, it being not consonant to God's word. Nor are little infants, that cannot examine themselves, nor give ac- count of their faith, nor understand what is signified by the outward signs of bread and wine, to be admitted to this sa- crament. Though St. Austin taught so from John vi. 63. and many of the Greek churches so believe and practise to this day. And this holy ordinance ought to be often cele- brated among the faithful, with examination of themselves, viz. of their faith, and love, and knowledge of these holy and divine mysteries, lest they eat and drink their own damnation, for profaning of God's holy ordinance, as many, we fear, have done, and yet do at this day; whose hard and blind hearts the Lord in mercy open, if it be his blessed wUl. See the popish catechism, p. 286,. &c ; ib. p. 197, &c. ; see Mr. Fox's Book of Martyrs; 1 Cor. xi. 18, &c. XXXIV. Article. Of the discipline and government of the church of Christ. We believe that the great king and lawgiver, Christ, the universal and onlj- head of his church, hath given to his visible church, a subordinate power, or authority, for the well- being, ordering, and governing of it, for his own glory, and 154 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. the church's profit and good, the executive part of which de- rivative power of discipline and government is committed to his ministers, proportionable to their dignities and places in the church, in a most harmonious way, for the beauty, order, government, and establishment of the same, and consisteth in the exercise and execution of the censures, or rod of correction, he hath appointed therein, for the purgation or pruning of the same, in order to prevent scandals and offences, both public and private. And in case of personal and private tres- passes between party and party, that the member so offended tell his offence to his brother, between them alone ; and if he shall not hear him, to take one or two more ; if he will not hear him then, to tell it unto the church ; and the ministers of Christ ought to rebuke them sharply that sin before them in the church ; and in case there there be any wicked, public, and scandalous sinners, or obstinate heretics, that then the church ought speedily to convene such her members, and labour to convict them of their sin and heresy, schism, and profaneness, whatsoever it be; and after such regular suspen- sion and due admonition, if such sinners repent not, that then for the honour of God, and preserving the credit of re- ligion, and in order to save the sinner's soul, and good of the church, in obedience to God's law to proceed and excommu- nicate the sinner, by a judicial sentence in the name of Christ and his church, tendering an admonition of repentance to him, with gravity, love, and authority, and all this without hypo- crisy or partiality, praying for the sinner, that his soul may be saved in the day of the Lord ; and under this second de- gree, of withdrawing, or excommunication, to account him as a heathen or publican, that he may be ashamed. But upon the third, and highest act of excommunication, it being a most dreadful thunderclap of God's judgment, it is most difficult for any church now to proceed in, it being difficult to know when any man hath sinned the unpardonable sin, and so to ORTHODOX CRRED. 155 incur a total cutting of from the church. Isaiah ix. 6; Matt. xxviii. 18 ; xviii. 17, 11 ; Eev. ii. 3 ; 1 Cor. v. 4; Heb. xiii. 7, 17 ; 2 Thess. iii. 6 ; 1 Thess. v. 12, &c.; 2 Cor. ii. 5—7 ; Lev. xix. 17, 18; Matt, xviii. 15, &c.; 1 Tim. v. 20; 2 Tim. ii. 14 ; Tit. i. 12—14 ; Lev. xiii. 1, &c.; Numb. xii. 14, 15 ; 2 Thess. iii. 3 ; 1 Cor. v. 4, &c.; Tit. iii. 10 ; Rev. iL 14, 20, &c.; Matt, xviii. 17 ; 1 Cor. xvi. 22. XXXV. Aeticle. Of communion of saints, and giving to the poor. All Christians that have been baptized into one faith, and united in one true visible way of worshipping the true God, by Christ Jesus our Lord, should keep the unity of the Spirit, in the bond of peace, seeing there is but one mystical body of Christ, and should have fellowship and communion in each other's sufferings, or afflictions, for if one member suffer all are pained with it. Hence it is also they partake of each other's gifts in great variety, which make the harmony of de- pendency on each other, seeing a need of every member, for the public use and common profit of the whole, both in the private as well as more public and solemn worship of God's house ; as also an interest in each other's goods and posses- sions, so far as comports with necessity and charity, according to the charter privileges, or law of their King ; . and though no equality of property be pleaded for, yet the works of charity and mercy must be minded as a duty, to lend to the Lord, and pity and relieve the Lord's poor, weekly laying out for them, as God hath prospered us, according to oux ability in freedom, liberality, and charity, according to our brethren's necessity, whether sick, or in prison, to visit and relieve them, and not only within the church, but to all as we have oppor- tunity and ability to be doing good. Eph. iv. 5 ; Col. iii. 156 CWMFESSIONS OF FAITH. 15; Acts ii. 46; Eph. iv. :?, 4, &c. ; 1 Cor. xii. 12, 13; Acts iv. 32; 1 Cor. xii. 26; xii. 4, 5, &c.; 2 Cor. viii. 9, 11, &c.; Psalm xxxvii. 26; Prov. xi. 25; xix. 17; xxii. 22; Deut. XV. 10; Eph. iv. 28 ; 1 Cor. xvi. 1, 2 ; iii. 14, 1.^ ; Deut. XV. 7, &c.; Matt. xxv. 35, &c. XXXVI. Articjle. Of perseverance. Those that are effectually called, according to God's eternal purpose, being justified by faith, do receive such a measure of the holy unction from the Holy Spirit, by which they shall certainly persevere unto eternal life. Kom. viii. 28; Gal. ii. 14; John i. 12, 13; John xvii. 12, 21 ; x. 28, 29; Kom. i. 17; Jer. xxxi. 33, 34; Kom. viii. 30. XXXVII. Article. Of the sacred scripture. The authority of the holy scripture dependeth not upon the authority of any man, but only upon the authority of God, who hath delivered and revealed his mind therein unto us, and containeth all things necessary for salvation; so that what- soever is not read therein, nor may be proved thereby, is not to be required of any man, that it should be believed as an article of the Christian faith, or be thought requisite to salva- tion. Neither ought we, since we have the scriptures delivered to us now, to depend upon, hearken to, or regard the pretended immediate inspirations, dreams, or prophetical predictions, by or from any person whatsoever, lest we be deluded by them. Nor yet do we believe, that the works of creation, nor the law written in the heart, viz. natural religion, as some call it or the light within man, as such, is sufficient to inform man of Christ the mediator, or of the way to salvation, or eternal ORTHODOX CREED. 157 life by liim ; but the holy scriptures are necessary to instruct all men in the way of salvation, and eternal life. And we do believe, that all people ought to have them in their mother tongue, and diligently and constantly to read them in their particular places and families, for their edification, and comfort; and endeavour to frame their lives, ^according to the direction of God's word, both in faith and practice, the holy scriptures being of no private interpretation, but ought to be interpreted according to the analogy of faith, and is the best interpreter of itself, and is sole judge in controversy _ And no decrees of popes or councils, or writings of any person whatsoever, are of equal authority with the sacred scriptures. And by the holy scriptures we understand, the canonical books of the Old and New Testament, as they are now translated into our English mother tongue, of which there hath never been any doubf of their verity and author- ity in the protestant churches of Christ to this day. 2 Pet. i. 19, &c. ; 2 Tim. iii. 15, &c. ; John xx. 30, 31 ; xxi. 25; Matt. xxii. 29 ; John v. 39, 46, 47; x. 35; xvii. 12 ; Prov. XXX. 5, 6 ; Joshua i. 7 ; Kev. xxii. 18 ; Deut. xii. 32 ; Isaiah ■viii. 20; 2 Pet. i. 19; 2 John vii. 8 — 10; Matt. xxiv. 23, &c.; 2 Thess. ii. 7, &c.; 1 Cor. i. 20, &c.; iL 6,7, &c.; Eom. XV. 4, 5 ; xvi. 25, 26 ; i. 16, &c.; Gal. v. 22; Rom. xi. 31 32 ; X. 13, &c. ; 1 Cor. xiv. 4, 9, &c. ; CoL iii. 16 ; 2 Pet. i! 20, 21; Acts xv. 15, 16; Matt. xxii. 29, 30; Acts xvii. 10, &c. ; xviii. 28. [Then follows the names of the books of the Old and New Testament, as acknowledged in all protestant confessions, after which follow these words :] All which are given by the inspiration of God, to be the rule of faith and life. 158 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. XXXVIII. Article. Of the three creeds. The three creeds, viz. the Nicene creed, Athanasius's creed, and the Apostles' creed, as they are commonly called, ought thoroughly to be received, and believed. For we believe, they may be proved, by most undoubted authority, of holy scripture, and are necessary to be understood of all Christians; and to be instructed in the knowledge of them, by the min- isters of Christ, according to the analogy of faith, recorded in sacred scriptures, upon which these creeds are grounded ; and catechistically opened and expounded in all Christian families, for the edification of young and old, which might be a means to prevent heresy in doctrine, and practice, these creeds containing all things in a brief manner that are neces- sary to be known, fundamentally, in order to our salvation ; to which end they may be considered, and better understood of all men, we have here printed them under their several titles as foUoweth, viz. The Apostles^ Creed. I believe in Grod, the Father almighty, &c. The Nicene Creed. We believe in one God, the Father almighty, &c. Athanasius Creed. Whosoever will be saved, before all things, &c. (I have omitted inserting the creeds at length, they being to be found in every Common Prayer-book, and only observe, that upon the article in the Apostles' creed, he descended into hell, they thus comment, " Not that he, to wit, Christ, went into the place of the damned, but that he went absolutely ORTHODOX CREED. 159 into the state of the dead." See Dr. Usher in his Body of Divinity, p. 174, and Mr. Perkins, on the Creed.) XXXIX. Article. Of general councils, or assemblies. General councils, or assemblies^ consisting of bishops, elders, and brethren, of the several churches of Christ, and being legally convened, and met togetherout of all thechurches, and the churches appearing there by their representatives, make but one church, and have lav^ful right and suffrage in this general meeting, or assembly, to act in the name of Christ, it being of divine authority, and is the best means under heaven to preserve unity, to prevent heresy, and su- perintendency among, or in any congregation whatsoever within its own limits, or jurisdiction. And to such a meeting, or assembly, appeals ought to be made, in case any injustice be done, or heresy, and schism countenanced, in any particular congregation of Christ ; and the decisive voice in such general assemblies is the major part, and such general assemblies have lawful power to hear and determine, as also to excom- municate. Acts XV. 1, &c. ; Acts xv. 11, &c. ; Matt, xviii. 20 ; Acts XV. 30, 31 ; Matt, xviii. 18, 19 ; 1 Cor. v. 4—6. XL. Ajkticle. OJ religious worship and the sabbath day. The light of nature showeth there is a God, who hath a sovereignty over all; but the holy scripture hath fully re- vealed it, as also that all men should worship him, according to God's own institution and appointment. And hath limited us, by his own revealed will, that he may not be worshipped according to the imaginations and devices of men, or the suggestions of Satan, under any visible representations what- 160 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. soever, or any other way not prescribed in the holy scrip- tures ; and all religious worship is to be given to the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost; and to God alone, not to angels, saints, or any other creature, and since the fall not without a mediator, nor in the mediation of any other but Christ alone ; nor is this worshipping of God now, under the gospel, tied to any place, or made more acceptable by one place than another. Yet the assembly of the church ought not to be neglected by any. And in order to his being worshipped and served, God hath instituted one day in seven for his sabbath to be kept holy unto him, which from the resur- rection of Christ, is the first day of the week, which is called the Lord's day, and is to be observed and continued to the end of the world, as a Christian sabbath, the last day of the week being abolished. And this Christian sabbath is to be kept after a due and reverent manner, in preparing of our hearts, and ordering of affairs so beforehand that we may rest that day from worldly and carnal employments, and frequent the solemn assemblies of the church, and in aU. public and private duties of religion, as hearing, meditating, and conferring, and reading in or of the holy scriptures, together with prayer, public and private, and in the duties of necessity, charity, and mercy, and not in any vain or worldly discourse or idle recreations whatsoever. Rom. i. 19, 20, ii. 15; 1 Chron xvi. 29 ; Ps. xcv. 6, 7, 8, xcvii. 1, xcix. 5 ; Deut. viii. 6 Ps. ciii. 7, xiv. 6 ; Mark vii. 7 ; Ps. xcix. 8, 9, cvi. 29, 39 John iv. 24; Kev. ix. 20; Exod. xxxiv. 14; 1 Cor. viii. 4 Matt, xxviii. 19; Deut. v. 26, &c. ; John xiv. 6 ; Gal. iii. 9 Heb. ix. 15; 1 Tim. iL 5; Matt, xviii. 20; John iv. 21 Mai. i. 1 1 ; 1 Tim. ii. 8 ; Heb. x. 25 ; Acts ii. 42 ; Exod. XX. 8 ; 1 Cor. xvi. 1, 2 ; Acts xx. 7 ; Rev. i. 10 ; Isaiah iviii. 13 ; Neh. xiii. 15, &c. ; Heb. x. 25 ; Rev. i. 3 ; James i. 23, 25 ; Rom. x. 14 ; Ps. cxix. 15 ; Zech. vii. 2 ; Luke xxi. 36 ; Acts xvi. 13, 16;' Isa. Ivi. 2, 6. ORTHODOX CREED. 161 XLI. Article. Of public and private prayer. Prayer is a holy, religious, and sacred ordinance of God, and the duty of all men to perform by the law of God ; and to God alone, and no other, whether saint or angel, and in the name of Christ the mediator, and in his name alone, and no other, whether saint or angel, or any other creature ; and that for all men living, except they have sinned the unpardonable sin, both high and low; especially for ministers and magistrates : and not for dead saints, nor infernal spirits. And prayer is to be made in a tongue understood by the people. And we ought to pray for all things necessary, ac- cording to the wiU of God in Christ Jesus, in a solemn and reverent manner, every way suitable and agreeable to the platform, or manner of prayer, which Christ taught his disciples and us, in his holy gospel, which is the only perfect rule of all prayers ; and by the assistance of the Holy Spirit of God, without which we cannot pray aright And this religious worship all men are bound and required to serve God in both public and private, at least two times a day, in all Christian families, by prayers and supplications, inter- cessions, and giving of thanks to God the Father, in the name and mediation of Christ Jesus our Lord. Matt. vi. 7; Jude 20 ; Heb. xii. 28 ; Isaiah Iv. 6 ; Jer. xxix. 12, x. 6, 25 ; Ps. xxxii. 6 ; Matt xxvi. 41 ; Isa. xxx. 2 ; Hos. iv. 12 ; James i. 5 ; John xiv. 13, 14, xv. 16, xvi. 23; 1 Tim. ii. 1, 2, 3 ; James v. 16 ; 1 Thess. v. 17, 25 ; 2 Thess. iii. 1, 2 ; Matt, ix- 38 ; 1 Cor. xiv. 14, &c. ; Matt. vL 6, &c. ; Eoni. viii. 26, 27 ; 1 Thess. v. 18 ; Isa. xvii. 65 ; Jer. xviii. 14/ 15; Hos. v. 4; Pa. Ixix. 6 ; Dan. vi. 10; Ps. v. 2, 3; Ps.lv. 15, 16, 17; Zach. viii. 21; Phil. i. 4, 6 ; 1 Tim. iv. 5; Isa. i. 15 ; Rev. v. 8. M 162 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. XLII. Article. Of public humiliation by fasting and yrayer. Public humiliation by fasting and prayer, is an ordinance of God, appointed for his church and people. And it being an extraordinary duty, especially as it hath respect to the church generally, or the nation as such, and therefore we must have due regard to the grounds, ends, and manner, of its being performed ; confessing of and reforming from sin, both in public as well as private fasts ; abstaining from our pleasures, as also our common food, in a sensible and real afflicting of our souls before the Lord ; or to seek to God by prayer and fasting for some spiritual or temporal good that God hath promised us, or that we stand in need of, having due regard to God's word and glory, in this solemn or divine ordinance. Joel i. 14, 15, ii. 12, 13, &c.; 2 Chron. XX. 3 ; Lev. xxiii. 27, &c. ; Ezra viii. 21, ix. 4, x. 1 ; Neh. ix. 1, 2, 3 ; Isa. Iviii. 3, 4, &c. ; Jonah iii. 4, 6, &c. ; Zech. vii. 5 ; Matt. vi. 16, &c. ; 2 Sam. xii. 21, 22 ; Esther iv. 16. XLIII. Article. Of family or relative duties therein. Parents and masters are a sort of subordinate governors and rulers, in their respective jurisdictions and families, in their respective relative places, according to their capacities and opportunities ; and are engaged from God's word to take the charge of their families, and rule and govern them according to the word of God, both husbands, parents, masters, and all others concerned in any such relation ; and by their godly and religious example, instruct their families, they being found carefully keeping of the sabbath-day, in the holy and religious services of hearbg the word preached ORTHODOX CRKED. 163 with public and private prayer. As also requiring and instructing their families and relations to follow their godly and religious example, in the private and public exercises of religion ; and calling them to an account how they spend the sabbath and other times, and mercies they enjoy ; especially the reading of the scriptures, and hearing the word preached with public prayer with them and for them, in order to a blessing for them and their families. The neglect of which duty, or power of godliness and religion in families, is one main cause of that wicked atheism and impiety in the world and families, and of the carnal lukewarmness and ignorance in churches, together with contempt of government ; because many professors make so little account or conscience of per- forming any duty at home in their own families. Gen. xviii. 19 ; 1 Sam. ii. 23, &c. ; Prov. xxx. 11, &c. ; 1 Tim. v. 8 ; Matt. vii. 9, 10; Col. iv. 1 ; Eph. iv. 25, &c., v. 4; Josh, xxiv. 15; Eph. v. 19, &c., vi. 1, 2, Sjc. ; Prov. i. 1; Acts X. 30, 33 ; 1 Tim. iii. 4 ; 1 Kings ii. 1, 2, 3 ; Gen. xlix. 28, 29; Job i. 5 ; 1 Chron. xxix. 19; Prov. xxii. 6, 15; 2 Kings ii. 24 ; Prov. xxix. 15, 21 ; 2 Tim. iii. 15. XLIV. Aeticle. Of children dying in infancy. We do believe, that all little children dying in their infancy, viz., before they are capable to choose either good or evil, whether born of believing parents or unbelieving parents, shall be saved by the grace of God and merit of Christ their Redeemer, and the work of the Holy Ghost, and so being made members of the invisible church shall enjoy life everlastincr ; for our Lord Jesus saith, of such belongs the kingdom of heaven. Ergo, we conclude, that that opinion is false, which saith, that those little infants dying before baptism, are damned. Isa. vii. 16, viii. 4; 2 Sam. xii. 19, &c.; M 2 164 "CONFESSIONS OP FAITH. Ezek. xviii. 4, &c. ; I Kings xiv. 13 ; Matt, xviii. 2, 3, 4 ; Jer. xxxi. 29, 30; Deut. i. 39; Matt. xix. 13, 14; Mark x. 13, &c. XLV. Article. Of the civil magistrate. The supreme lord and king of all the world hath ordained civil magistrates, to be under him over the people for his own glory and the public good. And the office of a magistrate may be accepted of and executed by Christians, when law- fully called thereunto; and God hath given the power of the sword into the hands of all lawful magistrates for the defence and encouragement of them that do well, and for the punish- ment of evil doers, and for the maintenance of justice and peace, according to the wholesome laws of each kingdom and commonwealth, and they may wage war upon just and necessary occasions. And subjection in the Lord ought to be yielded to the magistrates in all lawful things commanded by them, for conscience' sake, with prayers for them for a blessing upon them, paying all lawful and reasonable custom and tribute to them, for the assisting of them against foreign, domestical, and potent enemies. Rom. xiii. 1, &c. ; Prov. viii. 15 ; 1 Pet. ii. 14; Prov. xx. 26 ; 2 Sam. xxiii. 3; Ps. Ixxxii. 3, 4 ; Ixxii. 4, 7 ; Ecc. iii. 8 ; Prov. xx. 18 ; Luke iii. 15 ; Acts X. 22; 1 Chron. v. 22; Prov. xxiv. 6; Tit. iii. 1; 2 Pet. ii. 13, 17 ; Ecc. x. 20 ; Prov. xxi. 22 ; Eom. xiii. 5 ; 1 Tim. ii. 1, 2 ; Matt. xxii. 17, 21 ; xvii. 15, 17 ; 1 Sam. xxi. 16, 17 ; xxiii. 15, 16. XL VI. Article. Of liberty of conscience. The Lord Jesus Christ, who is King of kings, and Lord of all by purchase, and is judge of .quick and dead, is the only lord. ORTHODOX CREED. 165 of conscience, having a peculiar right so to be ; he having died for that end, to take away the guilt, and to destroy the filth of sin, that keeps the consciences of all men in thraldom and bondage, till they are set free by his special grace. And therefore he would not have the consciences of men in bondage to or imposed upon by any usurpation, tyranny, or command whatsoever, contrary to his revealed will in his word, which is the only rule he hath left for the consciences of all men to be ruled, and regulated, and guided by, through the assistance of his Spirit. And therefore the obedience to any command or decree, that is not revealed in or consonant to his word, in the holy oracles of scripture, is a betraying of the true liberty of conscience. And the requiring of an im- plicit faith, and an absolute blind obedience, destroys liberty of conscience, and reason also, it being repugnant to both, and that no pretended good end whatsoever, by any man, can make that action, obedience, or practice, lawful and good, that is not grounded in, or upon the authority of holy scripture, or right reason agreeable thereunto. 1 Tim. vi. 15; Acts x. 36; iv. 17, &c. ; James iv. 12; Rom. xiv. 4; Acts v. 29; 1 Cor. vii. 23 ; Matt. xv. 9 ; xxiv. 9 ; CoL ii. 20, &c.; 1 Cor. xi 23; 1 Pet. V. 2, 3 ; ]\Iatt. xv. 14; Deut. xii. 32; Micah vi. 6—8; Acts xvii. 25, &c. ; Deut. iv. 17, 19; 1 Cor. x. 18; 1 Sam. XV. 3, &c. ; Eom. xiv. 10, 12 ; Gal. i. 14 ; Phil. iii. 6 ; John iv. 22 ; 2 Sam. iiL 6, &c. XL VII. Aeticle. Of marriage. Marriage is to be between one man and one woman; neither is it lawful for any man to have more than one wife, nor for any woman to have more than one husband, at the same time. And it is lawful for all sorts of people to marry, who are able of judgment to give their consent. But marriage must not 166 CO>iFESSIONS OF FAITH. be within tlie degrees of consauguinity or affinity, forbidden in the word, nor can any such incestuous marriages ever be made lawful by any law of man, or consent of parties, to hve together as man and wife. And it is the duty of Christians to marry in the Lord, and therefore those that profess the true religion ought not to marry with infidels, or idolaters, nor profane wicked persons in their life, nor yet with any that maintain damnable heresies. Matt. xix. 5, 6 ; Gen. ii. 24 : Mai. ii. 15; 1 Cor. vii. 36 ; Heb. xiii. 4; 1 Tim. iv. 3 ; Exod. xxii. 16, 17; Gen. xxix. 23; Lev. xviii.6,&c.; 2 Sam. xiii. 14; Gen. xxxviiL 16; Deut. xxiL 28 ; Eph. v. 3 ; 1 Cor. vii. 2 ; v. 1, 4, 13 ; Gen, vi. 2; 1 Cor. vii. 39 ; Numb. xxv. 1, 2 ; 2 Cor. vi. 14, &c. XL VIII. A.RTICLE. Of the lawfulness of an oath. A lawful oath is a part of religious worship, wherein the person swearing in truth, righteousness, and judgment, so- lemnly calleth God to witness what he sweareth, and to judge him according to the truth or falseness thereof. And we are to swear by no other name, but by the name of God only, when we are called before a lawful magistrate, upon a lawful matter, warranted by God's holy word ; and an oath is to be taken in the plain and common sense of the words, without equivocation or mental reservation, in a solemn and reverent using of God's holy name ; and such an oath we believe all Christians, when lawfully called thereunto by the magistrate, may take. But the foolish monastical vows of papists, and all idle and vain swearing, is an abominable, and wicked pro- faning of the holy name of God. Exod. xx. 17; Deut. vi. 13; X. 20 ; Jer. iv. 2 ; Psalm xv. 4 ; Zech. v. 4; 2 Chron. vi. 22, 23 ; Isa. Ixv. 16 ; Jer. xii. 16 ; Matt. v. 34 ; Neh. xiii. 25 ; 2 Ivings xi. 4, 17 ; Psalm xxiv. 4 ; Heb. vi. 16 ; Jer. xxiii. ORTHODOX CREED. 167 10; Lev. xix. 12; Eph. iv. 28; Amosviii. 14; James v. 12; 1 Sam. xiv. 29; 2 Kings vi. 31 ; Isaiah xlviii. 1 ; Zeph. i. 5. XLIX. Article. OJ the state of man after death, and of the resurrection of the dead. The bodies of men after death return to dust and see cor- ruption; but their souls, or spirits, which neither die nor sleep, having an immortal subsistence, immediately return to God who gave them ; the souls of the righteous being then made perfect in holiness, are received into paradise, where they are with Christ, and behold the face of God in light and glory, waiting for the full redemption of their bodies ; and the souls of the wicked are cast into hell, where they remain in torment and utter darkness, reserved to the judgment of the great day. And besides these two places for souls separated from their bodies, the holy scripture mentions none. And at the last day, such of the saints as shall be found alive, shall not sleep, but be changed, and all the dead shall be raised up with the self-same bodies and none other, although with different qua- lities, which shall be united to their souls for ever and ever ; but the bodies of the unjust, shall by the power of Christ, as a severe and just judge, be raised to dishonour: and the bodies of the just and righteous, by his Spirit, as he is head of the catholic church, unto honour, and be made conformable with his glorious body, and shall enjoy everlasting life, in singing perpetual praises and hallelujahs to God for ever and ever. Amen. Gen. iii. 19; Acts xiii. 36; Eccles. xii. 7; Acts viL 59; Luke xxiii. 43; 2 Cor. v. 1, 6, 8; Phil. i. 13; Heb. xii. 13; Jude 6 ; 1 Pet. iii. 19; Luke xvi. 13, 14 ; 1 Cor. xv. 51, 52 ; 1 Thess. iv. 17 ; Job xix. 26, 27 ; 1 Cor. xv. 42, &c. ; John V. 28, 29 ; Dan. xii. 2 ; 1 Cor. xv. 21, &. ; Rev. xx. 5, 6 ; Acts xxiv. 15 ; Phil. iii. 21 ; Rev. xix. 1, &c. ; xiv. 37. 168 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. L. Article. Of the last judgment. And lastly, we believe, God hath appointed a day, wherein he will judge the world in righteousness, by Jesus Christ, to whom all power and judgment is given of the Father ; in which day, not only the apostate angels shall be judged, but likewise all persons that have lived upon the earth shall ap- pear before the tribunal of Christ, to give an account of their thoughts, words, and deeds, and shall receive a just sentence, according to what they have done in their^ bodies, whether good or evil ; when God, according to his purpose, will mani- fest the glory of his mercy, in the salvation of his elect, and of his justice in the eternal damnation of the wicked and dis- obedient. For then shall the righteous go into everlasting life, and receive the fulness of joy and glory ; but the wicked, who know not God, nor obey the gospel offered them in Christ, shall be cast into eternal torments, and punished with ever- lasting destruction from the presence of the Lord, and from the glory of his power. Amen. Acts xvii. 31 ; John v. 22. 27; Eom. ii. 16; 2 Tim. iv. 1; 1 Cor. vi. 3; Jude 6; Matt, xii. 36 ; 2 Cor. v. 10 ; Eccles. xii. 14 ; Eom.' xiv. 10, 12 ; Matt. XXV. 32; Luke xxi. 28 ; 1 Thess. iv. 17 ; Psalm xvi. 11 ; Luke xii. 32 ; Matt. xxv. 46 ; Psalm Iviii. 10 ; 2 Tim. iv. 8; Luke xvi. 28 ; Rev. xiv, 11 ; John viii. 24 ; 2 Thess. i. 1, &c.; Kev. xx. 10, 11, &c.; xxii. 11, 15.^ [" This Confession is reprinted from Crosby, the editor haviug^faHed in his attempts to obtain an edition of the original work.'' CONFESSION OF FAITH, Put forth by the ELDERS AND BRETHREN Of many CONGEEGATIONS OF CHRISTIANS, (Baptized upon Profession of their Faith) IH London and the Country. With an APPENDIX CONCEKNING BAPTISM. With the Heart tnan bdieveth unto Jiighteousness, and with the Mouth Ctytifcssiou is made unto Salvation, Eom. 10, 10. Search the Scrijitures, John 5, 39. London : Printed for John Harris, at the Harrow against the Cliurch in the PouUrey. 1688. 171 [ The following notice was preyed to many copies of the edition of 1688, and to all subsequent editions.^ We, the ministers and messengers of, and concerned for, upwards of one hundred baptized congregations in England and Wales (denying Arminianism), being met together in London, from the third of the seventh month to the eleventh of the same, 1689, to consider of some things that might be for the glory of God, and the good of these congregations ; have thought meet (for the satisfaction of aU other Christians that differ from us in the point of baptism) to recommend to their perusal the Confession of our Faith, printed for and sold by Mr. John Harris, at the Harrow in the Poultry. Which Confession we own, as containing the doctrine of our faith and practice ; and do desire that the members of our churches respectively do furnish themselves therewith. Hanserd KnoUys. Daniel Finch. William KifBn. John BaU. John Harris. Edmond White. William CoUins. William Pritchard. Hercules Collins. Paul Fruin. Robert Steed. Richard Ring. Leonard Harrison. John Tomkins. George Barret. Toby WUles. Isaac Lamb. John Carter. Richard Adams. James Web. Benj. Keach. Richard Sutton. Andrew Giiford Robert Knight. Tho. Taux. Edward Price. Tho. WinneL William Phips. ' James Hitt. William Hawkins. Richard Tidmarsh. Samuel Ewer. WDIiam Facey. Edward Man. Samuel Buttall. Charles Archer. Christopher Price. In the name and behalf of the whole assembly. 172 [ To the fifth edition, 1720, was prefixed the followiny : — ] ADVERTISEMENT. This Confession of our Faith, together with the brief Instructions of the Principles of Christian Religion, or the Catechisms, both with the proofs in the margin, and also that with the words of the scriptures at length ; with this Con- fession, put forth by the ministers, elders, and brethren of above one hundred congregations of Christians, baptized on profession of their faith in England and Wales, denying Arminianism, owning the doctrine of personal election and final perseverance : having sold the property, right and title of the printing thereof, to John Marshall, bookseller, at the Bible in Gracechurch Street, by us, William Collins and Benjamin Keach, it is desired that all persons desirous to promote such useful books, do apply themselves to him. 173 TO THE JUDICIOUS AND IMPARTIAL READER. Courteous Reader, — It is now many years since divers of us (with other sober Christians then living and walk- ing in the way of the Lord, that we profess), did conceive ourselves to be under a necessity of publishing a Confession of our Faith, for the information and satisfaction of those that did not thoroughly understand what our principles were, or had entertained prejudices against our profession, by reason of the strange representation of them, by some men of note, who had taken very wrong measures, and accordingly led others into misapprehensions of us and them : and this was first put forth about the year 1 643, in the name of seven congregations then gathered in London ; since which time, divers impressions thereof have been dispersed abroad, and our end proposed in good measure answered, inasmuch as many (and some of those men eminent. both for piety and learning), were thereby satisfied that we were no way guilty of those heterodoxies and fundamental errors which had too frequently been charged upon us, without ground or occasion given on our part. And forasmuch as that Confession is not now commonly to be had, and also that many others have since embraced the same truth which is owned therein, it was judged necessary by us to join together in giving a testimony to the world of our firm adhering to those wholesome prin- ciples, by the publication of this which is now in your hand. And forasmuch as our method and manner of expressing our sentiments in this doth vary from the former (although the substance of the matter is the same), we shall freely 174 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. impart to you the reason and occasion thereof. One thing that greatly prevailed with us to undertake this work, was (not only to give a full account of ourselves to those Chris- tians that differ frona us about the subject of baptism, but also) the profit that might from thence arise unto those that have any account of our labours, in their instruction and establishment in the great truths of the gospel; in the clear understanding and steady belief of which, our comfortable walking with God. And fruitfulness before him in all our ways, is most nearly concerned. And therefore we did con- clude it necessary to express ourselves the more fully and distinctly, and also to fix on such a method as might be most comprehensive of those things which we designed to explain our sense and belief of ; and finding no defect in this regard in that fixed on by the Assembly, and after them by those of the Congregational way, we did readily conclude it best to retain the same order in our present Confession. And also when we observed that those last mentioned did, in their Confession (for reasons which seemed of weight both to themselves and others), choose not only to express their mind in words concurrent with the former in sense, concern- ing all those articles wherein they were agreed, but also for the most part without any variation of the terms, we did in like manner conclude it best to follow their example, in making use of the very same words with them both, in those articles (which are very many) wherein our faith and doctrine is the same with theirs. And this we did the more abundantly to manifest our consent with both, in all the fundamental articles of the Christian religion, as also with many others whose orthodox confessions have been published to the world, on the behalf of the protestants in divers nations and cities ; and also to convince all that we have no itch to clow relio-ion with new words, but do readily acquiesce in that form of sound words which hath been in consent with the holy scrip- TO THE READER. 175 tures, used by others before us ; hereby declaring before God, angels, and men, our hearty agreement with them, in that wholesome protestant doctrine, which with so clear evidence of scriptures they have asserted. Some things, indeed, are in some places added, some terms omitted, and some few changed ; but these alterations are of that nature, as that we need not doubt any charge or suspicion of unsoundness in the faith, from any of our brethren upon the account of them. In those things wherein we differ from others, we have expressed ourselves with all candour and plainness, that none might entertain jealousy of aught secretly lodged in our breasts, that we would not the world should be acquainted with ; yet we hope we have also observed those rules of modesty and humility as will render our freedom in this respect inoffensive, evea to those whose sentiments are different from ours. We have also taken care to afl^ texts of scripture in the margin, for the confirmation of each article in our Confession; in which work we have studiously endeavoured to select such as are most clear and pertinent for the proof of what is asserted by us ; and our earnest desire is, that all into whose hands this may come would follow that (never enough com- mended) example of the noble Bereans, who searched the scriptures daily that they might find out whether the things preached to them were so or not. There is one thing more which we sincerely profess, and earnestly desire credence in, viz., that contention is most remote from our design in aU that we have done in this matter ; and we hope the liberty of an ingenuous unfolding our principles and opening our hearts unto our brethren, with the scripture-grounds on which our faith and practice leans, will by none of them be either denied to us, or taken ill from us. Our whole design is accomplished if we may 176 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. obtain that justice, as to be measured in our principles and practice, and the judgment of both by others, according to what we have now published, which the Lord (whose eyes are as a flame of fire) knoweth to be the doctrine, which with our hearts we most firmly believe, and sincerely endeavour to conform our lives to. And oh ! that other contentions being laid asleep, the oidy care and contention of all upon whom the name of our blessed Redeemer is called, might, for the future, be to walk humbly with their God, and in the exer- cise of all love and meekness towards each other, to perfect holiness in the fear of the Lord, each one endeavouring to have his conversation such as becometh the gospel ; and also, suitable to his place and capacity, vigorously to promote in others the practice of true religion, and undefiled in the sight of Grod our Father.' And that in this backsliding day we might not spend our breath in fruitless complaints of the evils of others, but may every one begin at home, to reform in the first place our own hearts and ways, and then to quicken all that we may have influence upon to the same work ; that if the will of Grod were so, none might deceive, themselves by resting in and trusting to a form of godliness, without the power of it, and inward experience of the efficacy of those truths that are professed by them. And verily there is one spring and cause of the decay of religion in our day which we cannot but touch upon, and earnestly urge a redress of: and that is, the neglect of the worship of God in families, by those to whom the charge and conduct of them is committed. May not the gross ignorance and instability of many, with the profaneness of others, be justly charged upon their parents and masters, who have not trained them up in the way wherein they ought to walk when they were young; but have neglected those frequent and solemn commands which the Lord hath laid upon them so to ' [God and our Father," Ist edit.] TO THE READER. 177 catechise and instruct them, that their tender years might be seasoned with the knowledge of the truth of God, as revealed in the scriptures ; and also by their own omission of prayer and other duties of religion in their families, together with the ill example of their loose conversation, have iniired them first to a neglect and then contempt of all piety and religion ; we know this will not excuse the blindness or wickedness of any, but certainly it will fall heavy upon those that have been thus the occasion thereof; they indeed die in their sins, but wiU not their blood be required of those under whose care they were, who yet permitted them to go on without warning, yea led them into the paths of destruction? and wiU not the diligence of Christians, with respect to the dis- charge of these duties, in ages past, rise up in judgment against and condemn many of those who would be esteemed such now? We shall conclude with our earnest prayer, that the God of all grace will pour out those measures of his Holy Spirit upon us, that the profession of truth may be accompanied with the sound belief and diligent practice of it by us, that his name may in all things be glorified, through Jesus Christ our Lord. Amen. 178 CONTENTS. CHAP. I. Of the Holy Scriptures . . . • II. Of God and of the Holy Trinity III. Of God's decrees ... IV. Of Creation ...... V. Of Divine Providence .... VI. Of the Fall of Man, of Sin, and of the Punishment thereof VII. Of God's Covenant Vin. Of Christ the Mediator IX. Of Free "Wm . X. Of Effectual Calling XI. Of Justification XII. Of Adoption XIII. Of Sanctification . . . . XIV. Of Saving Faith .... XV. Of Eepentance unto Life and Salvation XVI. Of Good Works .... XVII. Of Perseverance of the Saints XVIII. Of the Assurance of Grace and Salvation XIX. Of the Law of God .... XX. Of the Gospel, and of the extent of the Grace thereof XXI. Of Christian Liberty, and Liberty of Conscience XXII. Of Religious Worship, and the Sabbath Day . XXIII. Of Lawful Oaths and Vows XXIV. Of the Civil Magistrate XXV. Of Marriage XXVI. Of the Church XXVII. Of the Communion of Saints XXVIII. Of Baptism and the Lord's Supper XXIX Of Baptism XXX. Of the Lord's Supper XXXI. Of the state of Man after Death, and of the Eesurrec- tion of the Dead XXXII. Of the Last Judgment An Appendix concerning Baptism PAGE 179 182 184 18G 187 189 191 192 19fi 197 198 200 200 201 203 204 206 207 , 209 . 211 212 . 214 . 216 . 217 . 219 . 219 . 224 . 225 . 226 226 229 230 231 CONFESSION OF FAITH. CHAP. I. Of the holy scriptures. 1. The holy scripture is the only sufficient, certain, and infallible (2 Tim. iii. 15, 16, 17 ; Isa. viii. 20; Luke xvi. 29, 31 ; Bph. ii. 20.) rule of aU. saving knowledge, faith, and obedience;' although the (B-om. i. 19, 20, 21, &c. ; ch. ii. 14, 15 ; Ps. xix. 1, 2, 3) light of nature and the works of crea- tion and providence do so far manifest the goodness, wisdom, and power of God, as to leave men unexcusable ; yet are they not sufficient to give that knowledge of God and his will, which is necessary unto salvation. (Heb. i. 1.) Therefore it pleased the Lord at sundry times and in divers manners, to reveal himself, and to declare that his will unto his church; and afterward, for the better preserving and propagating of the truth, and for the more sure establishment and comfort of the church against the corruption of the flesh, and the malice of Satan, and of the world, to commit the same wholly unto (Prov. xxii. 19, 20, 21 ; Kom. xv. 4; 2 Pet. i. 19, 20) writing ; which maketh the holy scriptures to be most neces- sary, those former ways of God's revealing his will unto his people being now ceased. 2. Under the name of holy scripture, or the word of God written, are now contained all the books of the Old and New Testament, which are these : — ' [This first sentence is not to "be found iu the Westminster or Savoy Con- fession.] N 2 180 CONFESSTONS OF FAITH. Of Ihc Old 'l\'Uament. Genesis, Exodus, Leviticus, Numbers, Deuteronomy, Joshua, Judges, Kuth, 1 Samuel, 2 Samuel, 1 Kings, 2 Kings, 1 Chronicles, 2 Chronicles, Ezra, Nehemiah, Esther, Job, Psalms, Proverbs, Ecclesiastes, The Song of Songs, Isaiah, Jeremiah, Lamentations, Ezekiel, Daniel, Hosea, Joel, Amos, Obadiah, Jonah, Micah, Nahum, Habakkuk, Zephaniah, Haggai, Zechariah, Malachi. Of the New Testament. Matthew, Mark, Luke, John, The Acts of the Apostles, Paul's Epistles to the Romans, 1 Corinthians, 2 Corinthians, Galatians, Ephesians, Philippians, Colossians, 1 Thessalonians, 2 Thessalonians, 1 Timothy, 2 Timothy, to Titus, to Philemon, the Epistle to the Hebrews, the Epistle of James, the first and second Epistles of Peter, the first, second, and third Epistles of John, the Epistle of Jude, the Revelation. All which are given by the (2 Tim. iii. 16) inspiration of God, to be the rule of faith and life. 3. The books commonly called Apocrypha, not being of (Luke xxiv. 27, 44 ; Rom. iii. 2) divine inspiration, are no part of the canon (or rule) of the scripture, and therefore are of no authority to the church of God, nor to be any otherwise approved or made use of, than other human writings. 4. The authority of the holy scripture, for which it ought to be believed, dependeth not upon the testimony of any man or church, but wholly upon (2 Pet. i. 19, 20, 21 ; 2 Tim. iii. 16 ; 2 Thess. ii. 13 ; 1 John v. 9) God (who is truth itself), the author thereof ; therefore it is to be received, because it is the word of God. 5. We may be moved and induced by the testimony of the church of God to an high and reverent esteem of the holy scriptures : and the heavenliness of the matter, the efficacy of i-^NFESSION OF ASSE5IBLY. 181 the doctrine, anu the majesty of the style, the coasent of all the parts, the scope of the whole (which is to give all glory to God), the full discovery it makes of the only way of man's salvation, and many other incomparable excellencies, and entire perfections thereof, are arguments whereby it doth abundantly evidence itself to be the word of God ; yet, not- withstanding, our (Johnxvi. 13, 14; I Cor. ii. 10, 11, 12 ;, 1 John ii. 2, 20. 27) full persuasion, and assurance of the infal- lible truth, and divine authority thereof, is from the inward work of the Holy Spirit, bearing witness by and with the word in our hearts, 6. The whole counsel of God concerning all things (2 Tim, iii. 15, 16, 17 ; Gal. i. 8, 9) necessary for his own glory, man's salvation, faith, and life, is either expressly set down or necessarily contained in the holy scripture ; unto which nothing at any time is to be added, whether by new revela- tion of the Spirit, or traditions of men. Nevertheless we acknowledge the (John vi. 45 ; 1 Cor. ii. 9, 10, 11, 12) inward illumination of the Spirit of God, to be necessary for the saving understanding of such things as are revealed in the word ; and that there are some circumstances concerning the worship of God and government of the church, common to human actions and societies, which are to be (1 Cor. xi. 13, 14 and ch. xiv. 26 and 40) ordered by the light of nature, and Christian prudence, according to the general rules of the word, which are always to be observed. 7. All things in scripture are not alike (2 Pet. iii. 16) plain in themselves, nor alike clear unto all ; yet those things which are necessary to be known, believed, and observed for salvation, are so (Psal. xix. 7 and cxix, 1 30) clearly pro- pounded and opened in some place of scripture or other, that not only the learned but the unlearned, in a due use of ordinary means, may attain to a sufficient understanding of them. 182 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. 8. The Old Testament in (Rom. iii. 2) Hebrew (which was the native language of the people of God of old) and the New Testament in Greek (which at the time of the writing of it was most generally known to the nations), being imme- diately inspired by God, and by his singular care and provi- dence kept pure in all ages, are therefore (Isa. viii. 20) authentical ; so as in all controversies of religion, the church is finally to appeal imto them (Act. xv. 15). But because these original tongues are not known to all the people of God, who have a right unto and interest in the scriptures, and are commanded in the fear of God to read (John v. 39) and search them, therefore they are to be translated into the vulgar language of every nation, unto which they (1 Cor. xiv. 6, 9, 11, 12, 24, 28) come, that the word of God dwelling (Col. iii. 16) plentifully in all, they may worship him in an accept- able manner, and through patience and comfort of the scrip- tures may have hope. 9. The infallible rule of interpretation of scripture is the (2 Pet. i. 20, 21 ; Act. xv. 15, 16) scripture itself. And therefore, when there is a question about the true and full sense of any scripture (which is not manifold but one), it must be searched by other places that speak more clearly. 10. The supreme judge by which all controversies of religion are to be determined, and all decrees of councils, opinions of ancient writers, doctrines of men, and private spirits, are to be examined, and in whose sentence we are to rest, can be no other but the holy scripture delivered by the Spirit, into which (Matt. xxii. 29, 31 ; Eph. ii. 20 ; Acts, xxviii. 23) scripture so delivered our faith is finally resolved. CHAP. II. Of God and of the Holy Trinity. 1. The Lord our God is but (1 Cor. viii. 4, 6 ; Deut. vi.4) CONFESSION OF ASSEMBLY. 183 one only living and true God ; whose ( Jer. x. 10 ; Isai. xlviii. 12) subsistence is in and of himself (Exod. iii. 14), infinite in being and perfection, whose essence cannot be comprehended by any but himself; (John iv. 24) a most pure Spirit, (1 Tim. i. 1 7 ; Deut. iv. 1 5, 1 6 ) invisible, without body, parts, or passions, who only hath immortality, dwelling in the light which no man can approach unto, who is (Mai. iii. 6) immutable, (1 Kings viii. 27 ; Jer. xxiii. 23) immense, (Psal. xc. 2) eternal, incomprehensible, (Gen. xvii. 1) Almighty, every way infinite, (Isa. vi. 3) most holy, most wise, most free, most absolute,'' (Ps. cxv. 3 ; Isa. xlvi. 10) working all things according to the counsel of his own immutable and most righteous will (Prov. xvi. 4 ; Eom. xi. 36) for his own glory, most loving, gracious, merciful, long-suffering, abundant in goodness and truth, forgiving iniquity, transgression, and sin (Exod. xxxiv. 6, 7 ; Heb. xi. 6), the rewarder of them that diligently seek him, and withal most just, (Neh. ix. 32, 33) and terrible in his judgments, (Ps. v. 5, 6) hating all sin, and who wUl by no means clear the (Exod. xxxiv. 7 ; Nahum i. 2, 3) guUty. 2. God, having all (John v. 26) life, (Ps. cxlviii. 14) glory, (Ps. cxix. 68) goodness, blessedness, in and of himself, is alone in, and unto himself all-sufficient, not (Job. xxii. 2, 3) stand- ing in need of any creature which he hath made, nor deriving any glory from them, but only manifesting his own glory in, by, unto, and upon them; he is the alone fountain of all being, (Rom. xi. 34, 35, 36) of whom, through whom, and to whom are all things, and he hath most sovereign (Dan. iv. 25, and v. 34, 35) dominion over all creatures, to do by them, for them, or upon them, whatsoever himself pleaseth; in his sight (Heb. iv. 13) all things are open and manifest, his know- ' [The Westminster and Savoy tody, parts, or passions ; immutable, Confessions read : — " There is but one immense, eternal, incomprehensible, only living and true God ; who is almighty ; most wise, most holy, infinite in being and perfection ; a most free, most absolute." &c.] most pure Spirit, invisible, without 184 COXFESSIONS OF FAITH. ledge is (Ezek. xi. 5 ; Acts xv. 18) infinite, infallible, and independent upon tlie creature, so as nothing is to him con- tingent, or uncertain ; he is most holy in all his counsels, in (Psal. cxlv. 17) all his works, and in all his commands; to him is due (Rev. v. 12, 13, 14) from angels and men, what- soever worship, service, or obedience, as creatures they owe Bnto the Creator, and whatever he is further pleased to require of them. 3. In this divine and infinite Being there are three sub- sistences, (1 John V. 7 ; Mat. xxviii. 19; 2 Cor. xiii. 14) the Father, the Word (or Son), and Holy Spirit, of one substance, power, and eternity/ each having the whole divine essence, (Exod. iii. 14; Job. xiv. 11 ; 1 Cor. viii. 6) yet the essence undivided ; the Father is of none, neither begotten nor pro- ceeding, the Son is (John i. 14, 18) eternally begotten of the Father, the Holy Spirit (John xv. 26 ; Gal. iv. 6) proceeding from the Father and the Son ; all infinite,* without beginning, therefore but one God, who is not to be divided in nature and being, but distinguished by several peculiar, relative pro- perties, and personal relations ;' which doctrine of the Trinity is the foundation of all our communion with God, and com- fortable dependence on him. CHAP. III. Of God's decrees. 1. God hath (Isa. xlvi. 10; Eph. i. 11 ; Heb. vi. 17; Rom. ix. 15, 18) decreed in himself, from all eternity, by the most wise and holy counsel of Ms own will, freely and un- changeably, all things whatsoever come to pass ; yet so as thereby is God neither the author of sin (Jam. i. 15, 17 ; 1 ' [The Savoy Confession reads: God the Sou, and God the Holy "In the unity of the Godhead there Ghost," &c.] be three persons, of one substance, * ["AH infinite" &c. This sentence power, and eternity, God the Father, is not in the Savoy Confession.] CONFESSIOK OF ASSEMBLY. 185 John i. 5) nor hath fellowship with any therein, nor is vio- lence offered to the will of the creature, nor yet is the liberty or contingency of second causes taken away, but rather (Acts iv. 27, 28; John xix. 11) established; in which appears his wisdom in disposing all things, and power, and faithfulness (Numb, xxiii. 19 ; Eph. i. 3, 4, 5) in accomplishing his decree. 2. Although God knoweth whatsoever may, or can come to pass upon all (Act. xv. 18) supposed conditions: yet hath he not decreed anything, (Rom. ix. 11, 13, 16, 18) because he foresaw it as future, or as that which would come to pass upon such conditions. 3. By the decree of God, for the manifestation of his glory, (1 Tim. V. 21; Mat. xxv. 41) some men and angels are pre- destinated or foreordained to eternal life, through Jesus Christ, to the (Eph. i. 5, 6) praise of his glorious grace ; others beijig left to act in their sin to their (Rom. ix. 22, 23 ; Jude 4) just condemnation, to the praise of his glorious justice.^ 4. These angels and men thus predestinated, and fore- ordained, are particularly and unchangeably designed ; and their (2 Tim. ii. 19 ; Joh. xiii. 18) number so certain, and definite, that it cannot be either increased or diminished. 5. Those of mankind (Eph. i. 4, 9, 11 ; Rom. viii. 30 ; 2 Tim. i. 9 ; 1 Thess. v. 9) that are predestinated to life, God, before the foundation of the world was laid, according to his eternal and immutable purpose and the secret counsel and good pleasure of his will, hath chosen in Christ unto ever- lasting glory, out of his mere free grace and love; (Rom. xix. 13, 16 ; Eph. L 6, 12) without any other thing in the creature as a condition or cause moving him thereunto.® ' [Instead of the sentence fol- ° [" Without any foresight of faith, lowing, the Westminster and Savoy or good works, or i^erseveiance in Confessions read, " and others fore- either of them, or any other thing in ordained to evei'lasting death."] the creature, as conditions or causes 186 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. 6. As God hath appointed the elect unto gloi-y, so lie hath, by the eternal and most free purpose of his will, fore-ordained (1 Pet. i. 2 ; 2 Thess. ii. 13) all the means thereunto, where- fore they who are elected, being fallen in Adam (1 Thess. v. 9, 10), are redeemed by Christ, are effectually (Horn. viii. 30; 2 Thess. li. 13) called unto faith in Christ, by his Spirit working in due season, are justified, adopted, sanctified, and kept by his power through faith (1 Pet. i. 5) unto salva- tion ; neither are any other redeemed by Christ, or effectu- ally called, justified, adopted, sanctified, and saved, but the elect (John x. 26 ; xvii. 9 ; vi. 64) only. 7. The doctrine of this high mystery of predestination is to be handled with special prudence and care ; that men attending the will of God revealed in his word and yielding obedience thereunto, may, from the certainty of their effectual vocation, be assured of their (1 Thess. i. 4, 6 ; 2 Pet. i. 10,) eternal election ; so shall this doctrine afford matter (Ephes i. 6 ; Kom. xi. 33) of praise, reverence, and admiration of God, and (Kom. xi. 5, 6) of humility, diligence, and abun- dant (Luke X. 20) consolation to all that sincerely obey the gospel.' CHAP IV. Of Creation. 1. In the beginning it pleased God the Father (John i. 2, 3 ; Heb. i. 2 ; Job xxvi. 13), Son, and Holy Spirit, for the mani- festation of the glory of (Rom. i. 20) his eternal power, moving him thereunto, and all to the of his o\™ will, whereby he extendeth praise of his glorious grace." West. or withholdeth mercy as he pleaseth, and Savoy Conf.] for the gloiy of his sovereign power ' [Under this article, the following over his oreatiu-es, to pass by and to paragraph is found in the "West- ordain them to dishonour and wrath minster and Savoy Confessions : " 7. for their sin, to the pi-aise of his The rest of mankind, God was pleased glorious justice."] according to the unsearchable counsel CONFESSION OF ASSEMBLY. 187 wisdom, and goodness, to create or make' the world, and all things therein (Col. i. 16; Gen. ii. 1, 2), whether visible or invisible, in the space of six days, and all very good. 2. After God had made all other creatures, he created CGen. i. 27) man, male and female, vs'ith(Gen. ii. 7) reason- able and immortal souls, rendering them fit unto that life to God for which they, were created ; being (Eccles. vii. 29 ; Gen. i. 26) made after the image of God, in knowledge, righteousness, and true holiness; having the law of God (Rom. ii. 14, 15) written in their hearts, and power to fulfil it ; and yet under a possibUitj^ of transgressing, being left to the liberty of their own will, which was (Gen. iii. 6) subject to change. 3. Besides the law written in their hearts, they received (Gen. vi. 17, iii. 8 — 10) a command not to eat of the tree of knowledge of good and evil; which whilst they kept, they were happy in their communion with God, and had dominion (Gen. i. 26, 28) over the creatures. CHAP. V. Of divine providence. 1. God, the good Creator of all things, in his infinite power and wisdom doth (Heb. i. 3 ; Job xxxviii. 11 ; Isa. xlvi. 10, 11 ; Psa. cxxxv. 6) uphold, direct,^ dispose, and govern all creatures and things, from the greatest even to the (Matt. x. 29 — 31) least, by his most wise and holy providence, to the end for the which they were created, according unto his in- fallible foreknowledge, and the free and immutable counsel of his (Eph. i. 11) own will ; to the praise of the glory of his wisdom, power, justice, infinite goodness, and mercy. ^ [" Of nothing :" — West, and Savoy tilings, doth uphold," &c. ; West, and Con£] Savoy Conf.] ' ["God, the great Creator of all 188 COJiFESSIONS OF FAITH. 2. Although in relation to the foreknowledge and decree of God, the first Cause, all things come to pass (Act^ ii. 23) immutably and infallibly ; so that> there is not any thing be- falls any (Prov. xvi. 33) by chance, or without his providence ; yet by the same providence he ordereth them to fall out according to the nature of second causes, either (Gen. viii. 22) necessarily, freely, or contingently. « 3. God in his ordinary providence (Acts xxvii. 31, 44; Isa. Iv. 10, 11) maketh use of means; yet is free (Hos. i. 7) to work without, (Rom. iv. 19, 20, 21) above, and (Dan. iii. 27) against them at his pleasure. 4. The almighty power, unsearchable wisdom, and infi- nite goodness of God so far manifest themselves in his provi- dence, that bis determinate counsel (Kom.xi. 32,33,34; 2 Sam. xxiv. 1; 1 Chron. xxi. 1) extendeth itself even to the first fall, and aU other sinful actions^, both of angels and men ; and that not by a bare permission, which also he most wisely and powerfully (2 Kings xlx. 28 ; Psa. Ixxvi. 10,) boundeth, and otherwise ordereth, and governeth, in a manifold dispensation to his most holy (Gen. 1. 20 ; Isa. x. 6, 7, 12) ends : yet so, as the sinfulness of their acts proceedeth only from the creatures, and not from God ; who being most holy and righteous, neither is nor can be the author or (Psa. 1. 21 ; 1 Joh. ii. 16,) approver of sin. 5. The most wise, righteous, and gracious God doth often- times leave for a season his own children to manifold tempta- tions and the corruptions of their own heart, to chastise them for their former sins, or to discover unto them the hidden strength of corruption and deceitfulness of their hearts (2 Chron. xxxii. 25, 26, 31 ; Sam. xxiv. 1 ; 2 Cor. xii. 7 — 9,) that they may be humbled ; and to raise them to a more close and constant dependence for their support upon himself; and >[" Other sins:'' — West. and Savoy Conf.] CONFESSION OF ASSEMBLY. 189 to make them more watchful against all future occasions of sin, and for other just and holy ends. So that whatsoever befalls any of his elect is by his ap- pointment, for his glory (Rom. viii. 28) and their good.^ 6. As for those wicked and ungodly men, whom God as a righteous judge, for former sin doth (E,om. L 24, 26, 28 ; xi. 7, 8) blind and harden; from them he not only with- holdeth his (Deut. xxix. 4) grace, whereby they might have been enlightened in their understanding |and wrought upon in their hearts ; but sometimes also withdraweth (Matt. xiiL 12) the gifts which they had, and exposeth them to such (Deut. ii. 30; 2 Kings viii. 12, 13) objects as their corrup- tions make occasion of sin ; and withal (Psa. Ixxxi. 11, 12 ; 2 Thess. ii. 10, 11, 12) gives them over to their own lusts, the temptations of the world, and the power of Satan, whereby it comes to pass that they (Exod. viii. 15, 32 ; Isai. vi. 9, 10 ; 1 Pet. ii. 7, 8) harden themselves, even under those means which God useth for the softening of others. 7. As the providence of God doth in general reach to aU creatures, so after a more special manner it taketh care of his (1 Tim. iv. 10; Amos ix. 8, 9 ; Isai. xliii. 3, 4, 5) church, and disposeth of all things to the good thereof. CHAP. VI. Of the fall of man, of sin, and of the punishment thereof. 1. Although God created man upright and perfect, and gave him a righteous law, which had been unto life had he kept it (Gen. ii. 16, 17), and threatened death upon the breach thereof, yet he did not long abide in this honour (Gen. iii. 12, X. 13 ; 2 Cor. L 1, 3) ; Satan using the subtlety of the serpent to seduce Eve, then by her seducing Adam, who without any P The last sentence is not found in the WeBt. and SaT. Confessions.] 190 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. any compulsion, did wilfully transgress the law of their cre- ation and the command given unto them, in eating the for- bidden fruit, which God was pleased according to his wise and holy counsel to permit, having purposed to order it to his own glory.3 2. Our first parents by this sin fell from their (Rom. iii. 23) original righteousness and communion with God, and we in them, whereby death came upon all (JRom. v. 12, &c.) ; all becoming dead in sin and wholly defiled (Tit. i. 15 ; Gen. vi. 5; Jer. xvii. 9; Rom. iii. 10 — 19,) in all the faculties and parts of soul and body. 3. They being the (Rom. v. 12—19; 1 Cor. xv. 21, 22, 45, 49) root, and by God's appointment, standing in the room and stead of all mankind, the guilt of the sin was imputed and corrupted nature conveyed to all their posterity, descend- ing from them by ordinary generation, being now (Psa. li. 5 ; Job xiv. 4) conceived in sin and by nature children (Eph. ii. 3) of wrath, the servants of sin, the subjects (Rom. vi. 20, V. 12) of death, and all other miseries, spiritual, temporal, and eternal, unless the Lord Jesus (Heb. ii. 14 ; 1 Thess, i. 10) set them free.^ 4. From this original corruption, whereby we are (Rom. viii. 7; Col. i. 21) utterly indisposed, disabled, and made opposite to all good, and wholly inclined to all evil, do (James i. 14, 15 ; Matt. xv. 19) proceed all actual trans- gressions . 2 [Westminster Conf. " 1. Our works, and life thereupon, with our first parents being seduced by the first parents, and all their posterity subtlety and temptation of Satan, in them, they being seduced by the sinned in eating the forbidden fruit. subtlety and temptation of Satan did. This their sin God was pleased, ac- wilfully, transgress the law of their cording to his wise and holy counsel, creation, and break the covenant, in to permit, having purposed to order eating the forbidden fruit."] it to his own glory." Savoy Conf. [« " Being now," &o. ; not in We.st. " 1. God having made a covenant of or Sav. Conf."] CONFESSION OF ASSEMBLY. 191 5. This corruption of nature, during this life, doth (Rom. vii. 18, 23 ; Eccles. vii. 20 ; 1 John i. 8) remain in those that are regenerated ; and although it be through Christ pardoned, and mortified, yet both itself, and the first motions thereof, are truly and properly (Eom. vii. 24, 25; Gal. v. 17) sin. CHAP. VII. Of God's covenant. 1. The distance between God and the creature is so great, that although reasonable creatures do owe obedience unto him as their Creator, yet they could never have attained the reward of life, but by some (Luke xvii. 10 ; Job xxxv. 7, 8) voluntary condescension on God's part, which he hath been pleased to express, by way of covenant.^ 2. Moreover, man having brought himself (Gen. ii. 17 ; Gal. iii. 10 ; B,om. iii. 20, 21) under the curse of the law by his fall, it pleased the Lord to make a covenant of grace, wherein he freely offereth unto sinners (Eom. viii. 3 ; Mark xvi. 15, 16 ; John iii. 16) life and salvation by Jesus Christ, requiring of them faith in him, that they may be saved ; and (Ezek. xxxvi. 26, 27 ; John vi. 44, 45 ; Psa. ex. 3) pro- mising to give unto aU those that are ordained unto eternal life, his Holy Spii'it, to make them willing and able to believe.' 3. This covenant is revealed in the gospel ; first of all to Adam in the promise of salvation by the (Gen. iii. 15) seed * [The West, and Savoy Conf. add ' [This paragraph is eubstituted the following : " 2. The first cove- for two others in the West, and Savoy nant made with man was a 'covenant Conf The Confession of Savoy also of works,' wherein life was promised departing from that of the Wesf^ to Adam, and in him to his posterity, minster divines.] upon condition of perfect and per- sonal obedience."] 192 COXFESSTONS OF FAITH. of the woman, and afterwards by farther steps, until the full (Heb. i. 1) discovery thereof was completed in the New Tes- tament ; and it is founded in that (2 Tim. i. 9 ; Tit. i. 2) eternal covenant transaction that was between the Father and the Son, about the redemption of the elect ; and it is alone by the grace of this covenant, that all of the posterity of fallen Adam, that ever were (Heb. ii. 6, 13; Rom. iv. 1, 2, &c. ; Acts iv. 12 ; John viil. 56) saved, did obtain life and a blessed immortality ; man being now utterly uncapable of acceptance with God upon those tenns, on which Adam stood in his state of innocence.^ CHAP. VIII . Of Christ the Mediator. 1. It pleased God, in his eternal purpose, to choose and ordain the Lord Jesus, his only begotten Son, according to the covenant made between them both (Isa. xlii. 1 ; 1 Pet. xix. 20), to be the mediator between God and man; the (Acts iii. 22) prophet, (Heb. v. 5, 6) priest and (Psal. ii. 6 ; Luke I. 33 ; Eph. i. 23 ; Heb. i. 2 ; Acts xvii. 31) king; head and Saviour of his church, the heir of all things, and judge of the world; unto whom he did from all eternity (Isa. liii. 10 ; John xvii. 6 ; Kom. viii. 30) give a people to be his seed, and to be by him in time redeemed, called, justi- fied, sanctified, and glorified. 2. The Son of God, the second person in the Holy Trinity, being very and eternal God, the brightness of the Father's glory, of one substance and equal with him : who made the world, who upholdeth and governeth all things he hath made ; ' [The West, and Savoy Conf. begin -was pleased to make a second, com- thia sentence thus : " Man, by his monly called the covenant of grace ; fall, having made himself incapable wherein, &,c. of life by that covenant, the Lord CONFESSION OF ASSEMBLY. 193 did, -when the fulness of time was come, take upon him (John i. 1, 14 ; Gal. iv. 4) man's natui-e, with all the essential properties and common infirmities thereof, (Rom. viii. 3 ; Heb. ii. 14, 16, 17; iv. 15) j-et without sin; being conceived by the Holy Spirit in the womb of the Virgin Mary, the Holy Spirit coming down upon her, and the power of the Most High overshadowing her, (Luke i. 27, 31, 35) and so was made of a woman, of the tribe of Judah, of the seed of Abraham and David, according to the scriptures ; ° so that two whole, perfect, and distinct natures were inseparably joined together in one person, without conversion, composi- tion, or confusion ; which person is very God, and very man, yet one (Rom. ix. 5 ; 1 Tim. ii. 5) Christ, the only mediator between God and man. 3. The Lord Jesus, in his human nature thus united to the divine in the person of the Son, was sanctified, and anointed (PsaL xlv. 7 ; Acts x. 38 ; John iii. 34) with the Holy Spirit, above measure ; having in him (Col. ii. 3) all the treasures of wisdom and knowledge ; in whom it pleased the Father, that (Col. i. 19) all fulness should dwell; to the end, that being (Heb. vii. 26) holy, harmless, undefiled, and full (John i. 14) of grace and truth, he might be thoroughly fur- nished to execute the office of a mediator, and (Heb. vii. 22) surety; which office he took not upon himself, but was thereunto (Heb. v. 5) called by his Father, who also put (John V. 22, 27 ; Matt, xxviii. 18 ; Acts ii. 36) all power and judo-ment in his hand, and gave him commandment to execute the same. 4. This office the Lord Jesus did most (Psa. xl. 1, 8 ; Heb. X. 5 — 11 ; John x. 18) willingly undertake, which that he might discharge he was made under the law (Gal. iv. 4 ; " [West, and Savoy Conf. read : her substance ;" without the rest of ' in the womb of the Virgin Mary, of the sentence.] 194 coxFESSiONS or faith. Matt. iii. 15) and did perfectly fulfil it, and underwent the (Gal. iii. 13 ; Isa. liii. 6 ; 1 Pet. iii. 18) punishment due to us, which we should have borne and suffered, being made (2 Cor. V. 21) sin and a curse for us ; enduring most grievous sorrows^ (Matt. xxvi. 37, 38 ; Luke xxii. 44; Matt, xxvii. 46) in his soul, and most painful sufferings in his body ; was crucified, and died, and remained in the state of the dead ;' yet saw no (Acts xiii. 37) corruption; on the (1 Cor. xv. 3, 4) third day he arose from the dead, with the same (John XX. 25, 27) body in which he suffered; with which he also (Mark xvi. 19 ; Acts i. 9, 10, 11) ascended into heaven ; and there sitteth at the right hand of his Father, (Rom. viii. 34 ; Heb. ix. 24) making intercession ; and shall (Acts x. 42 ; E,om. xiv. 9, 10 ; Acts i. 10) return to judge men and angels, at the end of the world. 5. The Lord Jesus, by his perfect obedience and sacrifice of himself, which he through the eternal Spirit once offered up unto God (Heb. ix. 14; x. 14; Rom. iii. 25, 26), hath fully satisfied the justice of God, procured reconciliation, and purchased an everlasting inheritance in the kingdom of heaven (John xvii. 2; Heb. ix. 15) for all those whom the Father hath given unto him. 6. Although the price of redemption was not actually paid by Christ," till after his incarnation (1 Cor. iv. 10 ; Heb. iv. 2; 1 Pet. i. 10, 11), yet the virtue, efficacy, and benefit thereof were communicated to the elect in all ages succes- sively, from the beginning of the world, in and by those promises, types, and sacrifices wherein he was revealed, and signified to be the seed of the woman, which should bruise ^ [Savoy Conf. inserts here, " im- = [West, and Savoy Conf. read, mediately from God."] "Although the work of redemption ' [West and Savoy Conf. read, v/ns not actually wrought by Christ."] " remained under the power of death.''] CONFESSION OF ,\iiSEMBLY. 195 tlie serpent's head, (E.ev. xiii. 8) and the Lamb slain from the foundation of the world ; (Heb. xiii. 8) being the same yesterday, and to-day, and for ever. 7. Christ in the work of mediation acteth according to both natures, by each nature doing that which is proper to itself; yet by reason of the unity of the person, that which is proper to one nature is sometimes in scripture attributed to the person (John iii. 13 ; Acts xx. 28) denominated by the other nature. 8. To all those for whom Christ hath obtained eternal redemption, he doth certainly and effectually (John vi. 37, X. 15, 16, xvli. 9 ; Rom. v. 10) apply, and communicate the same, making intercession for them ; uniting them to himself by his Spirit (John xvii. 6 ; Eph. i. 9 ; 1 John v. 20) re- vealing unto them, in and by the word, the mystery of salvation, persuading them to believe, and obey (Rom. viii. 9, 14) ; governing their hearts by his word and Spirit, and (Ps. ox. 1 ; 1 Cor. xv. 25, 26) overcoming all their enemies by his almighty power and wisdom ; in such manner and ways as are most consonant to his wonderful and (John iii. 8 ; Eph. i. 8) unsearchable dispensation; and all of free and absolute grace, without any condition foreseen in them, to procure it.' 9. This office of mediator between God and man, is proper (1 Tim. ii. 5) only to Christ, who is the prophet, priest, and kino- of the church of God ; and may not be either in whole, or any part thereof transferred from him to any other. 10. This number and order of offices is necessary ; for in in respect of our (John i. 18) ignorance, we stand in need of his prophetical office ; and in respect of our alienation from God (Col. i. 21 ; Gal. v. 17) and Imperfection of the best of our services, we need his priestly office, to reconcile us, -• [" And all of free," &c., not in West, and Savoy Couf.] O 2 196 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. and present us acceptable unto God : and in respect of our averseness and utter inability to return to God, and for our rescue and security from our spiritual adversaries, we need his kingly office (John xvi- 8 ; Ps. ex. 3 ; Luke i. 74, 75) to convince, subdue, draw, uphold, deliver, and preserve us to his heavenly kingdom.'* CHAP. IX. Of free will. 1. God hath indued the will of mau with that natural liberty and power of acting upon choice, that it is (Matt, xvii. 12; Jam. i. 14; Deut. xxx. 19) neither forced, nor by any necessity of nature determined to do good or evil. 2. Man in his state of innocency, had freedom, and power, to will and to do that (Eccl. vii. 29) which was good, and well-pleasing to God ; but yet (Gen. iii. 6) was mutable, so that he might fall from it. 3. Man, by his fall into a state of sin, hath wholly lost (Rom. v. 6, viii. 7) all ability of will to any spiritual good accompanying salvation; so as a natural man, being alto- gether averse from that good, (Eph. ii. 1, .5) and dead in sin, is not able, by his own strength, to (Tit. iii. 3, 4, 5 ; John vi. 44) convert himself, or to prepare himself thereunto. 4. When God converts a sinner, and translates him into the state of grace, (Col. i. 13 ; John 8, 36) he freeth him from his natural bondage under sin, and by his grace alone enables him (Phil. ii. 13) freely to will and to do that which is spiritually good ; yet so as that, by reason of his (Eom. vii. 15, 18, 19, 21,23) remaining corruptions, he doth not perfectly nor only will that which is good, but doth also will that Avhich is evil. * [The two last paragraphs are not constitute the 13th .ind 14th articles in the AVest. aud Savoy Conf., but of tlie Coufession of 1046. See ante.'] CONFESSION OF ASSEMBLY. 197 o. The will of man is made (Eph. iv. 13) perfectly and immutably free to God alone in the state of glory only. CHAP. X. Of effectual calling. 1. Those whom God hath pi-edestinated unto life he is pleased, in his appointed and accepted time, (Kom. viii. 30, xi. 7; Eph. i. 10, 11; 2 Thess. iii. 13, 14) effectually to call by his word and Spirit, out of that state of sin and death in which they are by nature, to grace and salvation (Eph. i. 1 — 6), by Jesus Christ ; enlightening their minds, spiritually and savingly, to (Acts xxvi. 18 ; Eph. i. 17, 18) understand the things of God; taking away their (Ezek. xxxvi. 26) heart of stone, and giving unto them a heart of flesh ; renewing their wills, and by his almighty power de- termining them (Dent. XXX. 6; Ezek. xxxvi. 27; Eph. i. 19) to that which is good, and effectually drawing them to Jesus Christ ; yet so as they come [(Psa. ex. 3 ; Cant. -i. 4) most freely, being made willing by his grace. 2. This effectual call is of God's free and special grace alone (2 Tim. i. 9; Eph. ii. 8), not from anything at all foreseen in man, nor from any power or agency in the creature, co-working with his special grace (1 Cor. ii. 14; Eph. ii. 5 ; John v. 25), the creature being wholly passive therein, being dead in sins and trespasses, until, being quickened and renewed by the Holy Spirit, he is thereby enabled to answer this call, and to embrace the grace offered and conveyed in it, and that by no less (Eph. i. 19, 20) power than that which raised up Christ from the dead. 3. Elect infants dying in infancy, are (John iii. 3, 5, 6) regenerated and saved by Christ through the Spirit ; who worketh when, and where, and (John iii. 8) how he pleaseth ; 198 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. SO also are all other elect persons, who are incapable of being outwardly called by the ministi-}' of the woixl. 4. Others not elected, altliough they may be called by the ministry of the word (Matt. xxii. 14; xiii. 20, 21 ; Hob. vi. 4, 5), and may have some common operations of the Spirit, j'et not being effectually drawn by the Father, they neither will nor can truly (John vi. 44, 45, 65 ; 1 John ii. 24, 25) come to Ciirist ;* and therefore cannot be saved : much less can men that receive not the Cliristian religion (Acts iv. 12 ; John iv. 22 ; xvii. 3) be saved ;' be they never so diligent to frame their lives according to the light of nature and the law of that religion they do jjrofess. CHAP. XI. Of justification. 1. Those whom God effectually calleth, he also freely (Eom. iii. 24 ; viii. 30) justifieth, not by infusing righteous- ness into them, but by (Rom. iv. 5, 6, 7, 8 ; Eph. i. 7) par- doning their sins, and by accounting and accepting their persons as (1 Cor. i. 30,31; Rom. v. 17, 18, 19) righteous; not for anything wrought in them'; or done by them, but for Christ's sake alone, not by imputing faith itself, the act of believing, or any other (Phil. iii. 8, 9 ; Eph. ii. 8, 9, 10) evangelical obedience to them, as their righteousness ; but by imputing Christ's active obedience unto the whole law, and passive obedience in his death, for their whole and sole righteousness, they (John i. 12; Rom. v. 17) receiving, and resting on him, and his righteousness, by faith ; which faith they have not of themselves, it is the gift of God. ^ [West. Conf., "Yet they never « [West, and Savoy Couf. read, truly come unto Christ ;" Savoy Conf. " men not professing the Christian " They neither do nor can come uuto religion be saved in any other way Christ."] whatsoever."] IONFESS10:S' 01' ASSEMBLY. 199 2. Faith thus receiving and resting on Christ, and his righteousness, is the (Rom. iii. 28) alone instrument of jus- tification : j'et it is not alone in the person justified, hut is ever accompanied with all other saving graces, and is no dead faith, (Gal. v. 6 ; James ii. 17, 22, 26) but worketh by love. 3. Christ, by his obedience and death, did fully discharge the debt of all those that are justified ; and did by the sacri- fice of himself, in the blood of his cross, undergoing in their stead the penalty due unto them, make a proper, real, and full satisfaction (Heb. x. 14; 1 Pet. i. 18, 19; Isa. liii. 5, 6) to God's justice in tlieir behalf; yet inasmuch as he was given by the Father for them, and his obedience and satisfaction accepted in their stead, and both (Rom. viii. 32 ; 2 Cor. v. 21) freely, not for anything in them, their justification is only of free grace, that both the exact justice and rich grace of God might be (Rom. iii. 26 ; Eph. i. 6, 7 ; ii. 7) glorified in the justification of sinners. 4. God did from all eternity decree to (Gal. iii. 8 ; 1 Pet. i. 2 ; 1 Tim. ii. 6) justify all the elect, and Christ did in the fulness of time die for their sins, and rise (Rom. iv. 25) again for their justification ; nevertheless they are not justified per- sonally, until the Holy Spirit doth in due time (CoL i. 21, 22 ; Tit. iii. 4, 5, 6, 7) actually apply Christ unto them. 5. God doth continue to (Matt. vi. 12; 1 John i. 7, 9) forgive the sins of those that are justified, and although they can never fall from the state of (John x. 28) justification, yet they may by their sins fall under God's (Psa. lxxxix.31, 32, 33) fatherly displeasure ; and in that condition, they have not usually the light of his countenance restored unto them, until they (Psa. xxjdi. 5, 51 ; Matt. xxvi. 75) humble them- selves, confess their sins, beg pardon, and renew their faith and repentance. 6. The justification of believers under the Old Testament, was in all these respects (Gal. iii. 9 ; Rom. iv. 22, 23, 24) 200 COiS'FESSlOKS OF FAITH. one and the same with the justification of believers under the New Testament. CHAP. XII. Of adoption. All those that are justified, God vouchsafed in and for tlie sake of his only Son Jesus Christ, to make partakers of the grace (Eph. i. 5 ; Gal. iv. 4, 5) of adoption ; by which they are taken into the number, and enjoy the liberties, and (John i. 12; Rom. viii. 17) privileges of children of God; have his (2 Cor. vi. 18; Eev. iii. 12,) name put upon them (Rom. viii. 15), receive the spirit of adoption (Gal. iv. 6 ; Eph. ii. 18), have access to the throne of grace with boldness ; are enabled to cry, Abba, Father; are (Psa. ciii. 13) pitied, (Prov. xiv. 26) protected, (1 Pet. v. 7) provided for, and (Heb. xii. 6) chastened by him, as by a father ; yet never (Isa. liv. 8, 9 ; Lam. iii. 31) cast off, but sealed (Eph. iv. 30) to the day of redemption, and inherit the promises, (Heb. i. 14 ; vi. 12) as heirs of everlasting salvation. CHAP. XIII. Of sanctification. 1. They who are united to Christ, effectually called, and regenerated, having a new heart and a new spirit created in them, through the virtue of Christ's death and resurrection ; are also (Acts xx. 32 ; Rom. vi. 5, 6) further sanctified, really, and personally, through the same virtue (John xvli. 17; Eph. iii. 16, 17, 18, 19; 1 Thess. v. 21, 22, 23;, by his word and Spirit dwelling in them ; (Rom. vi. 14) the dominion of the whole body of sin is destroyed, (Gal. v. 24) and the several COXFJiSSlOX OF ASSEJUiLY. 201 lusts thereof are more and more weakened and mortified ; and they more and more quickened, and,(Coi. i. 11) strengthened in all saving graces, to the (2 Cor. vii. 1 ; Heb. xii. 14) practice of all true holiness, without which no man shall see the Lord. 2. This sanctification is (1 Thess. v. 23) throughout, in the whole man, yet Imperfect (E.om. vii. 18, 23) in this life ; there abideth still some remnants of corruption in every part, whence ariseth a (Gal. v. 17 ; 1 Pet. ii. 11) continual, and irreconcilable war ; the flesh lusting against the spirit, and the spirit against the flesh. 3. In which war, although the remaining corruption for a time may much (Rom. vii. 23) prevail, yet, through the continual supply of strength, from the sanctifying Spirit of Christ, the (Rom. vi. 14) regenerate part doth overcome ; and so the saints grow in grace, perfecting holiness in the fear of God (Eph. iv. 15, 16 ; 2 Cor. iii. 18, vii. 1), pressing after an heavenly life, in evangelical obedience to all the commands which Christ, as head and king, in his word hath prescribed to them.' CHAP. XIV. Of saving faith. 1. The grace of faith, whereby the elect are enabled to believe to the saving of their souls, is the work of the Spirit of Christ (2 Cor. iv. 13 ; Eph. ii. 8) in their hearts, and is ordinarily wrought by the ministry of the (Rom. x. 14, 17) word ; by which also, and by the administration of baptism, and the Lord's supper, prayer', and other means appointed of ' ["Pressing after," &c., not in tration of the sacraments and prayer," West, or Savoy Conf.] &c Savoy Conf. : " By the adminis- ' [West. Conf. : " By the adminis- tration of the seals, jjrayer, &c."] 202 CUNFKSSIONS OV l''AlTlt. God, it is increased (Luke xvii. 5; 1 Pot. ii. 2; Acl^xx. 32) and strengthened. 2. By this faith, a Christian believeth to be true (Acts xxiv. 14) whatsoever is revealed in the word, for the authority of God himself; and also apprehendeth an excellency therein (Psa. xix. 7, 8, 9, 10, cxix. 72) above all other writings, and all things in the world ; as it bears forth the glory of God in his attributes, the excellency of Christ in his nature and ofBces, and the power and fulness of the Holy Spirit in his workings and operations ; and so is enabled to (2 Tim. i. 12) cast his soul upon the truth thus believed.9 And also acteth differently upon that which each particular passage thereof containeth ; yielding obedience to the (John XV. 14) commands, trembling at the (Isa. Ixvi. 2) threatenings, and embracing the (Pleb. xi. 13) promises of God, for this life and that which is to come. But the principal acts of saving faith have immediate relation to Christ, accepting, receiving, and resting upon (John i. 12 ; Acts xvi. 31 ; Gal. ii. 20 ; Acts xv. 11) him alone, for justification, sanctifica- tion, and eternal life, by virtue of the covenant of grace. 3. This faith, although it be different in degrees, and may be weak (Heb. v. 13, 14; Matt. vi. 30; Eom. iv. 19, 20), or strong, yet it is in the least degree of it different in the kind, or nature of it (as is all other saving grace) from the faith (2 Pet. i. 1) and common grace of temporary believers; and therefore though it may be many times assailed, and weakened, yet it gets (Eph. vi. 16 ; 1 John v. 4, 5) the victory, growing up in many, to the attainment of a full (Heb. vi. 11, 12; Col. ii. 2) assurance through Christ, who is both the author (Heb. xii. 2) and finisher of our faith. " [" Also apprehendeth au excellency," &c., not in the "West, and Savoy Conf.] CONFESSION OF ASSEMBLY. ~03 CHAP. XV. Of repentance unto life and salvation. 1. Such of the elect as are converted at riper years, having (Tit. iii. 2, 3, 4, 5) sometime lived in the state of nature, and therein served divers lusts and pleasures, God in their effectual calling giveth them repentance unto life. 2. Whereas there is none that doth good, and sinneth (Eccles. vii. 20) not, and the best of men may, through the power and deceitfulness of their corruption dwelling in them, with the prevalency of temptation, fall into great sins and provocations, Grod hath in the covenant of grace mercifully provided that believers so sinning and falling (Luke xxii. 31, 32) be renewed through repentance unto salvation. 3. This saving repentance is an (Zech. xii. 10; Acts xi. 18) evangelical grace, whereby a person, being by the Holy Spirit made sensible of the manifold evils of his sin, doth, by faith in Christ, humble himself for it with godly sorrow, detestation of it, and self-abhorrency ; (Ezek. xxxvi. 31; 2 Cor. vii. 11) praying for pardon and strength of grace, with a purpose and endeavour by supplies of the Spirit to (Ps. cxlx. 6, 128) walk before God unto all weU-pleasing in all things. 4. As repentance is to be continued through the whole course of our lives, upon the account of the body of death, and the motions thereof ; so it is every man's duty to repent of his (Luke xix. 8 ; 1 Tim. i. 13, 15) particular known sins particularly". 5. Such is the provision which God hath made through Christ in the covenant of grace, for the preservation of believers unto salvation, that although there is no sin so small but it deserves (Eom. vi. 23) damnation ; yet there is no sin so great, that it shall bring damnation on them that 204 CONFESSIONS or FAITH. (Isa. i. 16. 18, Iv. 7) repent; which makes the constant preaching of repentance necessary. CHA.P. XVI. Of good works. 1. Good works are only such as God hath (Mic. vi. 8 ; Heb. xiii. 21) commanded in his holy word, and not such as without the warrant thereof are devised by men, out of blind zeal (Matt. xv. 9; Isa. xxix. 13) or upon any pretence of good intentions. 2. These good works, done in obedience to God's com- mandments, are the fruits and evidences (James ii. 18, 22) of a true and lively faith; and by them believers manifest their (Ps. cxvi. 12, 13; 1 John ii. 3, 5 ; 2 Pet. i. 5—11) assurance, edify their (Matt. v. 16) brethren, adorn the pro- fession of the gospel, stop the mouths of the adversaries, and glorify (1 Tim. vi. 1 ; 1 Pet. ii. 15; Phil. i. 11) God, whose Avorkmanship they are,, created in Christ Jesus (Eph. ii. 10) thereunto, that having their fruit unto holiness, they may have the end (Rom. vi. 22) eternal life. 3. Their ability to do good works is not at all of them- selves, but wholly from the Spirit (John xv. 4, 6) of Christ ; and that they may be enabled thereunto, besides the graces they have already received, there is necessary an (2 Cor. iii. 5 ; Phil. ii. 13) actual influence of the same Holy Spirit, to work in them to will and to do of his good pleasure ; yet are they not hereupon to grow negligent, as if they were not bound to perform any duty, unless upon a special motion of the Spirit, but they ought to be diligent in (Phil. ii. 12 ; Heb. vi. 11, 12; Isa. Ixiv. 7) stirring up the grace of God that is in them. 4. They who in their obedience attain to the greatest CONFESSION OF ASSEMBLY. 205 height which is possible in this life, are so far from being able to supererogate and to do more than God requires, as that (Job ix. 2, 3 ; Gal. v. 17 : Luke xvii. 10) they fall short of much which in duty they are bound to do. 5. We cannot by our best works merit pardon of sin or eternal life at the hand of God, by reason of the great disproportion that is between them and the glory to come, and the infinite distance that is between us and God, whom by them we can neither profit nor satisfy, for the debt of our (Rom. iiL 20 ; Eph. ii. 8, 9 ; Rom. iv. 6) former sins ; but when we liave done all we can, we have done but our duty, and are unprofitable servants ; and because as they are good they proceed from his (Gal. v. 22, 23) Spirit, and as they are wrought by us they are defiled (Isa. Ixiv. 6 ; Ps. cxliii. 2) and mixed with so much weakness and imperfection, that they cannot endure the sevei-ity of God's judgment. 6. Yet, notwithstanding, the persons of believers being accepted through Christ, their good works also are accepted in (Eph. i. 6 ; 1 Pet. ii. 5) him ; not as though they were in this life wholly unblameable and unreproveable in God's sigbt, but that he, looking upon them in his Son, is pleased to accept and reward that which is (Matt. xxv. 21, 23 ; Heb. vL 10) sincere, although accompanied with many weaknesses and imperfections. 7. Works done by unregenerate men, although for the matter of them they may be things which God commands, and of good use both to themselves and (2 Kings x. 30 ; 1 Kings xxi. 27, 29) others ; yet because they proceed not from a heart purified by (Gen. iv. 5 ; Heb. xi. 4, 6) faith, nor are done in a right manner according to the (1 Cor. xiii. 1) word, nor to a right end, the (Matt. vi. 2, 5) glory of God, i;hey are therefore sinful and cannot please God, nor make a man meet to receive grace from (Amos v. 21, 22 ; Rom. ix. 16 ; Tit. iii. 5) God; and yet their neglect of them 206 COXFKSSIOXS OF FAITH. is more sinful imd (Job xxi. 14, 15 ; Matt. xxv. 41, 42, 43) displeasing to God. CHAP. XYII. Of perseverance of the saints. 1. Those whom God hath accepted in the Beloved, effectually called and sanctified by his Spirit, and given the precious faith of his elect unto, can neither totally nor finally fall from the state of grace (John x. 28, 29 ; Phil. i. 6 ; 2 Tim. ii. 19; 1 John ii. 19); but shall certainly persevere therein to the end and be eternally saved, seeing the gifts and callings of God are without repentance (whence he still begets and nourisheth in them faith, repentance, love, joy, hope, and all the graces of the Spirit unto immortality) ; and though many storms and floods arise and beat against them, yet they shall never be able to take them off that foundation and rock which by faith they are fastened upon ; notwith- standing, through unbelief and the temptations of Satan, the sensible sight of the light and love of God may for a time be clouded and obscured from (Ps. Ixxxix. 31, 32 ; 1 Cor. xi. 32) them, yet he is still the same (MaL iii. 6), and they shall be sure to be kept by the power of God unto salvation, 'Avhere they shall enjoy their purchased possession, they being engraven upon the palm of his hands, and their names having been written in the book of life from all eternity.' 2. This perseverance of the saints depends not upon their own free will, but upon the immutability of the decree of (Rom. viii. 30, ix. 11, 16) election, flowing from the free and unchangeable love of God the Father ; upon the efficacy of the merit and intercession of Jesus Christ (Rom. v. 9, 10 ; John ' ["Seeing the gifts and callings of Couf. See Art. 23 ..f Conf. of 1646, God," &c. ; not in the West, oi' Savoy ante.'] (XiXFESSION OF ASSEJIHLY. 207 xlv. 19) and union with him, the (Heb. vi. 17, 18) oatli of God, the abiding of his Spirit, and the (1 John iii. 9) seed of God within them, and the nature of the (Jer. xxxii. 40) covenant of grace ; from all which ariseth also the certainty and infallibility thereof. 3. And though they may, through the temptation of Satan and of the world, the prevalency of corruption remaining in them, and the neglect of the means of their preservation fall into grievous (Matt. xxvi. 70, 72, 74) sins, and for a time continue therein, whereby they incur (Isa. Ixiv. 5, 9 ; Eph. iv. 30) God's displeasure, and grieve his Holy Spirit, come to have their graces and (Ps. li. 10, 12) comforts impaired, have their hearts hardened and their consciences wounded, (Ps. xxxii, 3, 4) hurt and scandalize others, and bring tem- poral judgments (2 Sam. xii. 14) upon themselves, yet they shall renew their (Luke xxii. 32, v. 61, 62) repentance and be preserved, through faith in Christ Jesus, to the end.^ CHAP. XVIII. Of tlie assurance of grace and salvation. 1. Although temporary believers and other unregeherate men, may vainly deceive themselves with false hopes and caj-nal presumptions of being in the favour of God, and [in a] state of salvation (Job viii. 13, 14 ; Matt. vli. 22, 23), which hope of theirs shall perish ; yet such as truly believe in the Lord Jesus, and love him in sincerity, endeavouring to walk in all good conscience before him, may in this life be certainly assured (1 John ii. 3, iii. 14, 18, 19, 21, 24, v. 13) that they are in the state of grace ; and may rejoice in the hope of the ' [Savoy Conf. reads ; " Yet they of God through faith unto salva- are, aud shall he, kept by the power tion."] 208 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. glory of God, which liope shall never make them (Rom. v. 2, 5) ashamed. 2. This certainty is not a bare conjectural and probable persuasion, grounded upon (Heb. vi. 11, 19) a fallible hope, but an infallible assurance of faith, founded on the blood and righteousness of Christ (Heb. vi. 17, 18) revealed in the gospel ; and also upon the inward (Pet. i. 4, 5, 10, 11) evidence of those graces of the Spirit unto which promises are made, and on the testimony of the (E.om. viii. 15, 16) Spirit of adoption, witnessing with our spirits that we are the children of God ; and as a fruit thereof, keeping the heart both (1 .Fohn iii. 1, 2, 3) humble and holy. 3. This infallible assurance doth not so belong to the essence of faith, but that a true believer may wait long, and conflict with many difficulties, before he be (Isa. 1. 10 ; Ps. Ixxxviii., Ixxvii. 1- — 12) partaker of it ; yet being enabled by the Spirit, to know the things which are freely given him of God, he may without extraordinary revelation in the right use of means (1 John iv. 13 ; Heb. vi. 11, 12) attain thereunto ; and therefore it is the duty of every one to give all diligence to make their calling and election sure, that thereby his heart may be enlarged in peace and joy in the Holy Spirit, in love and thankfulness to God, and in strength and cheerfulness in the duties of obedience, the proper (Rom. V. 1, 2, 5, xiv. 17 ; Ps. cxix. 32) fruits of this assurance ; so far is it (Rom. vi. 1, 2 ; Tit. ii. 11, 12, 14) from inclining men to looseness. 4. True believers may have the assurance of their sal- vation divers ways shaken, diminished, and intermitted ; as (Cant V. 2, 3, 6) by negligence in preserving of it, by (Ps. Ii. 8, 12, 14) falling into some special sin, which woundeth the conscience, and grieveth the Spirit, by some sudden or (Ps. cxvi. 11, Ixxvii. 7, 8, xxxi. 22) vehement temptation, by God's withdrawing the (Ps. xxx. 7) light of his countenance. COXFESSIOK OF ASSEMBLY. 209 and suffering even such as fear him to walk in darkness and to have no light; yet are they never destitute' of the (1 John iii. 9) seed of God, and life (Luke xxii. 32) of faith, that love of Christ and the brethren, that sincerity of heart, and conscience of duty, out of which, by the operation of the Spirit, this assurance may in due time be (Ps. xlii. 5, 11) revived, and by the which in the mean time they are (Lam. iii. 26, 27 — 31) preserved from utter despair. CHAP. XIX. Of the laio of God. 1. God gave to Adam a law of universal obedience (Gen.i. 17; Eccles. vii. 29) written in his heart, and a particular precept of not eating the fruit of the tree of knowledge of good and evil ; * by which he bound him, and all his posterity to personal, entire, exact and perpetual (Rom. x. 5) obedience ; promised life upon the fulfilling, and (Gal. iii. 10, 12) threatened death upon the breach of it, and endued him with power and ability to keep it. 2. The same law that was first written in the heart of man (Eom. ii. 14, 15) continued to be a perfect rule of righteousness after the fall, aud was delivered by God upon mount Sinai in (Deut. x. 4) ten commandments, and written in two tables, the four first containing our duty towards God, and the other six our duty to man. 3. Besides this law, commonly called moral, God was pleased to give to the people of Israel ceremonial laws, con- taining several typical ordinances, partly of worship, (Heb. X. 1 ; Col. ii. 17) prefiguring Christ, his graces, actions, sufferings, and benefits ; and partly holding forth divers ^ [West, and Savoy Conf. : " Never * [West, and Savoy Conf. add, utterly destitute."] " As a covenant of works."] 210 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. instructions (1 Cor. v. 7) of moral duties ; all which cere- monial laws being appointed only to the time of reformation, are by Jesus Christ the true Messiah and only lawgi%'cr, who was furnished with power from the Father for that end (Col. ii. 14, 16, 17; Eph. ii. 14, 16), abrogated and taken away. 4. To them also he gave sundry judicial laws, which ex- pired together with the state of that people, not obliging any now by virtue of that institution ; their general (1 Cor. ix. 8, 9, 10) equity only being of moral use. 0. The moral law doth for ever bind all (Rom. xiii. 8, 9, 10; James ii. 8, 10, 11, 12), as well justified persons as others, to the obedience thereof, and that not only in regard of the matter contained in it, but also in respect of the (James ii. 10, 11) authority of God, the Creator, who gave it ; neither doth Christ in the gospel any way dissolve, (Matt. V. 17, 18, 19; Kom. iii. 31) but much strengthen this obligation. 6. Although true believers be not under the law, as a covenant of works (Rom. vi. 14 ; Gal. ii. 16 ; Rom. viii. 1 ; X. 4) to be thereby justified or condemned, yet it is of great use to them, as well as to others, in that, as a rule of life, informing them of the will of God and their duty, it directs and binds them to walk accordingly (Rom. iii. 20 ; vli. 7, &c.); discovering also the sinful pollutions of their natures, hearts, and lives, so as examining themselves thereby, tliey may come to further conviction of, humiliation for, and hatred against, sin, together with a clearer sight of the need they have of Christ and the perfection of his obedience ; it is likewise of use to the regenerate, to restrain their cor- ruptions, in that it forbids sin ; and the threatenings of it serve to show what even their sins deserve, and what afflictions in this life they may expect for them, althouo-h freed from the curse and unallayed rigour thereof. The CONFESSION OF ASSEMBLY. 211 promises of it likewise show them God's approbation of obedience, and what blessings they may expect upon the performance thereof, though not as due to them by the law as a covenant of works ; so as man's doing g-ood and re- fraining from evil, because the law encourageth to the one and deterreth from the other, is no evidence of his being (Eom. vi. 12 — 14 ; 1 Pet. iii. 8 — 13) under the law and not under grace. 7. Neither are the forementioned uses of the law (Gal. iii. 21) contrary to the grace of the gospel, but do sweetly comply with it, the Spirit of Christ subduing (Ezek. xxxvi. 27) and enabling the will of man to do that freely and cheerfully, which the will of God revealed in the law requireth to be done. CHAP. XX. Of the gospel, and of the extent of the grace thereof. 1. The covenant of works being broken by sin, and made unprofitable unto life, God was pleased to give forth the promise* of Christ (Geru iii. 15), the seed of the woman, as the means of calling the elect, and begetting in them faith and repentance ; in this promise, the (Rev. xiii. 8) gospel, as to the substance of it, was revealed, and [is] therein effectual, for the conversion and salvation of sinners. 2. This promise of Christ, and salvation by him, is re- vealed only by (B,om. i. 17) the word of God; neither do the works of creation, or providence, with the light of nature, (Rom. x. 14, 15, 17) malte discovery of Christ, or of grace by him, so much as in a general or obscure way ; much less that men, destitute of the revelation of him by the ' [Savoy Conf. : " To give unto the elect the promifie." This article is not found in the West. Conf.] P 2 212 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. promise or gospel, (Prov. xxix. 18 ; Isa. xxv. 7, Ix. 2, 3) should be enabled thereby to attain saving faith or repent- ance. 3. The revelation of the gospel unto sinners, made in divers times, and by sundry parts, -with the addition of promises and precepts, for the obedience required therein, as to the nations and persons to vrhom it is granted, is merely of the (Ps. cxlvii. 20; Acts xvi. 7) sovereign will and good pleasure of God ; not being annexed by virtue of any pro- mise, to the due improvement of men's natural abilities, by virtue of common light received without it, which none ever did (Rom. i. 18, &c.) make, or can so do: and therefore in all ages the preaching of the gospel hath been granted unto persons and nations, as to the extent or straightening of it, in great variety, according to the counsel of the will of God. 4. Although the gospel be the only outward means of revealing Christ and saving grace, and is as such abundantly sufficient thereunto, yet that men who are born in trespasses may be born again, quickened, or regenerated, there is moreover necessary an effectual, insuperable (Ps. ex. 3 ; 1 Cor. ii. 14 ; Eph. i. 19, 20) work of the Holy Spirit upon the whole soul, for the producing in them a new spiritual life; without which no other means will effect (John vi. 44 ; 2 Cor. iv. 4, 6) their conversion unto God." CHAP. XXI. Of Christian liberty, and liberty of conscience. 1. The liberty which Christ hath purchased for believers under the gospel, consists in their freedom from the guilt of sin, the condemning wrath of God, the rigour and (Gal. iii. ° [Savoy Conf. : " No other means are sufficient for their conversion unto God."] C'ONI'ESSION OF ASSEMBLY. 213 13) curse of the law, and In their being delivered from this present evil (Gal. i. 4) world, bondage to (Acts xxvi. 18) Satan, and dominion (Rom. viii. 3) of sin, from the (Rom. viii. 28) evil of afflictions, the fear, and sting (1 Cor. xv. 54, 55, 56, 57) of death, the victory of the grave, and (2 Thess. i. 10) everlasting damnation; as also in their (Rom. viii. 15) free access to God, and their yielding obedience unto him, not out of a slavish fear, (Luke i. 74, 75 ; 1 John iv. 18) but a child-like love and willing mind. All which were common also to believers under the law (Gal. ill. 9, 14) for the substance of them ; but under the New Testament, the liberty of Christians is further enlarged in their freedom from the yoke of the ceremonial law,T to which the Jewish church was subjected, and in greater bold- ness of access to the throne of grace, and in fuller communi- cations of the (John vii. 38, 39; Heb. x. 19, 20, 21) free Spirit of God, than believers under the law did ordinarily partake of. 2. God alone is (James iv. 12 ; Rom. xiv. 4) Lord of the conscience, and hath left it free from the doctrines and com- mandments of men (Acts iv. 19, and v. 29 ; 1 Cor. vii. 23 ; Matt. XV. 9) which, are in any thing contrary to his word or not contained in it. So that to believe such doctrines, or obey such commands out of conscience, (Col. ii. 20, 22, 23) is to betray true liberty of conscience ; and the requiring of an (1 Cor. iii. 5 ; 2 Cor. i. 24) implicit faith, and absolute and blind obedience, is to destroy liberty of conscience and reason also. 3. They who, upon pretence of Christian liberty, do practise any sin, or cherish any sinful lust, as they do thereby pervert the main design of the grace of the gospel (Rom. ' [And " the whole legal administratioti of the covenant of gi-ace." Savoy Conf.] 214 CONl'ESSIONS OF FAITH. vi. 1, 2) to their own destruction, so they wholly destroy (Gal. V. 13 ; 2 Pet. il. 18—21) the end of Christian liberty ; which is, that being delivered out of the hands of all our enemies, we might serve the Lord without fear, in holiness and righteousness before him, all the days of our life. CHAP. XXII. Of religious worship, and the sabhath-dny. 1. The light of nature shows that there is a God, who hath lordship and sovereignty over all ; is just, good, and doth good unto all; and is therefore to be feared, loved, praised, called upon, trusted in, and served, with all the heart, and all the soul, (Jer. x. "7 ; Mark xii. 3-3) and with all the might. But the acceptable way of worshipping the the true God, is (Deut. xii. 32) instituted by himself, and so limited by his own revealed will, that he may not be wor- shipped according to the imaginations and devices of men, or the suggestions of Satan, under any visible representations, or (Exod. XX. 4, 5, 6) any other way not prescribed in the holy scriptures. 2. Religious worship is to be given to God the Father, Son, and Holy Spirit, and to him (Matt. Iv. 9, 10 ; John vi. 23 ; Matt, xxviii. 19) alone ; not to angels, saints, or any other (Rom. i. 25; Col. ii. 18; Rev. xix. 10) creatures; and since the fall, not without a (John xiv. 6) mediator, nor in the mediation of any other but (1 Tim. ii. 5) Christ alone. 3. Prayer, with thanksgiving, being one special part of natural worship, is by God required of (Psal. xcv. 1 — 7 ; Ixv. 2) all men. But that it may be accepted, it is to be made in the (John xiv. 13, 14) name of the Son, by the help (Rom. viii. 26) of the Spirit, according to (1 John v. 14) his will ; with understanding, reverence, humility, fervency, faith. CONFESSION OF ASSEMBLY. 215 love, and perseverance ; and when with others, in a (1 Cor. xiv. 16, 17) known tongue. 4. Prayer is to be made for things lawful, and for all sorts of men living, (1 Tim. ii. 1, 2; Sam. vii. 29) or that shall live hereafter; but not (2 Sam. xii. 21, 22, 23) for the dead, nor for those of whom it may be known, that they have sinned (1 John v. 16) the sin unto death. 5. The (1 Tim. iv. 13) reading of the scriptures, preaching, and (2 Tim. iv. 2; Luke viii. 18) hearing the word of God, teaching and admonishing one another in psalms, hymns, and spiritual songs, singing with grace in our hearts to (Col. iii. 16 ; Eph. V. 19) the Lord; as also the administration (Matt xxviii. 19, 20) of baptism and (1 Cor. xi. 26) the Lord's supper,are all parts of religious worship of God, to be per- formed in obedience to him, with understanding, faith, reverence, and godly fear ; moreover, solenm humiliation, (Esth. iv- 16; Joel ii. 12) with fastings, and thanksgivings, upon (Exod. XV. 1, &c.; Psal. cvii.) special occasions, ought to be used in an holy and religious manner. 6. Neither prayer, nor any other part of religious worship, is now, under the gospel, tied unto, or made more acceptable by, any place in which it is (John iv. 21; Mai. i. 11; 1 Tim. ii. 8) performed, or towards which it is directed ; but God is to be worshipped every where in spirit and in truth ; as in (Acts X. 2) private families (Matt, vl 11 ; Psal. Iv. 17) daily, and (Matt. vi. 6) in secret each one by himself, so more solemnly in the public assemblies, which are not care- lessly, nor wilfully, to be (Heb. x. 25; Acts ii. 42) neglected or forsaken, when God by his word or providence calleth thereunto. 7. As it is of the law of nature, that in general a pro- portion of time, by God's appointment, be set apart for the worship of God, so by^his word, in a positive, moral, and per- petual commandment, binding all men, in all ages, he hath 216 COXFESSIONS OF FAITH. particularly appointed one day in seven for a (Exod. xx. 8) sabbath to be kept holy unto him, which from the beginning of the world, to the resurrection of Christ, was the last day of the week, and fvom the resurrection of Christ was changed into the first day of the week, (1 Cor. xvi. I, 2 ; Acts XX. 7 ; Rev. i. 10) which is called the Lord's day ; and is to be continued to the end of the world, as the Christian sabbath; the observation of the last day of the week being abolished. 8. The sabbath is then kept holy unto the Lord, wlien men, after a due preparation of their hearts, and ordering their common affaifs-aforehand, do not only observe an holy (Isa. Iviii. 13 ; Neh. xiii. 15 — 23) rest all the day, from their own works, words, and thoughts, about their worldly employ- ment, and recreations, but also are taken up the whole time in the public and private exercises of his worship, and in the duties (Matt. xii. 1 — 13) of necessity and mercy. CHAP. XXIII. Of lawful oaths and vows. 1. A lawful oath is a part of religious worship, (Exod. xx. 7 ; Deut. x. 20 ; Jer. iv. 2) wherein the person swearing in truth, righteousness, and judgment, solemnly calleth God to witness what he sweareth, (2 Chron. vi. 22, 23) and to judge him according to the truth or falseness thereof. 2. The name of God only is that by which naen ought to swear ; and therein it is to be used, with all holy fear and reverence; therefore to swear vainly or rashly by that glori- ous and dreadful name, or to swear at all by any other thing, is sinful, and to be (Matt. v. 34, 37 ; Jam. v. 12) abhorred ; yet as in matter of weight and moment, for confirmation of truth, (Heb. vi. 16 ; Cor. i. 23) and ending all strife, an oath is warranted by the word of God ; so a lawful oath being COXFESSIOX OF ASSEMULY. 217 imposed, (Neh. xiii. 25) by lawful authority, in such matters, ought to be taken. 3. Whosoever taketh an oath, warranted by the word of God, ought duly to consider the weightiness of so solemn an act, and therein to avouch nothing, but what he knoweth to be truth ; for that by rash, false, and vain oaths, the (Lev. xix. 12 ; Jer xxiii. 10) Lord is provoked, and for them this land mourns.^ 4. An oath is to be taken in the plain and (Psal. xxiv. 4) common sense of the words, without equivocation or mental reservation. 5. A vow, which is not to be made to any creature, but to God alone,9 (Psal. Ixxvi. 11; Gen. xxviii. 20, 21, 22) is to be made and performed with all religious care and faithful- ness; but popish monastical vows, (1 Cor. vii. 2, 9) of per- petual single life, professed (Eph. iv. 28) poverty, and regular obedience, are so far from being degrees of higher perfection, that they are superstitious, (Matt. xix. 11) and sinful snares, in which no Christian may entangle himself. CHAP. XXIV. Of the civil magistrate. 1. God, the supreme Lord, and King of all the world, hath ordained civil (Rom. xiii. 1, 2, 3, 4) magistrates to be under him, over the people, for his own glory, and the public good; and to this end hath armed them with the power of the * [" Nothing, but what he is fully ing anything that is good and just, persuaded is the truth ; neither may being lawfully imposed by authority." any man bind himself by oath to any West, and Savoy Conf.] thing but what is good and just, and ' [" Is of a like nature to a pro- what he believeth so to be, and what missory oath." West, and Savoy he is able and resolved to perfoi-m ; Conf.] vet it is a sin lo refuse an oath touch- 218 CONFESSIOKS OF FAITH. sword, for defence and encouragement of them that do good, and for the punishment of evil doers. 2. It is lawful for Christians to accept and execute the office of a magistrate, when called thereunto ; in the manage- ment whereof, as they ought especially to maintain (2 Sam. xxiii. 3 ; Psal. Ixxxii. 3, 4) justice and peace, according to the wholesome laws of each kingdom, and commonwealth; so for that end they may lawfully now under the New Testa- ment (Luke iii. 14) wage war, upon just and necessary occasions. 3. Civil magistrates being set up by God, for the ends aforesaid, subjection in all lawful things commanded by them ought to be yielded by us in the Lord, not only for wrath, (E.om. xiii. 5, 6, 7 ; 1 Pet. ii. 17) but for conscience' sake; and we ought to make supplications and praj^ers for kings and all that are in authority, (1 Tim, ii. 1, 2) that under them we may live a quiet and peaceable life, in all godliness and honesty.^ 1 [This paragraph is not found in conversation, and holding the founda^ the West, and Savoy Confessions. tion ; not disturbing others in their (See Art. 48, Conf. of 1646.) Instead ways or worship, that differ from of it, the divines of the Savoy affirm them ; there is no wai-rant for the the following important sentiments : magistrate, under the gospel,to abridge " Although the magistrate is them of their liberty." The Asaem- bound to encourage, promote, and bly of Divines is still more peremptory, protect the professors and profession in declaring the authority and duty of the gospel, and to manage and order of the magistrate to be, "to take order, civil administrations in a due sub- that unity and peace be preserved in serviency to the interest of Clirist in the church, that the truth of God be the world ; and to that end to take kept pure and entire ; that all bias- care that men of corrupt minds and phemies and heresies be suppressed, conversation do not licentiously pub- aU corruptions and abuses in worship lish and divulge blasphemy and errors, and discipline prevented or reformed in their own nature subverting the and all ordinances of God duly settled, faith, and inevitably destroying the administered, and observed. . souls of them that receive them ; yet He hath power to call synods, to be in such differences about the doctrines present at them, and to provide that of the gospel, or ways of the worship whatever is transacted in them be ac- of God, as may befall men exercising a cording to the mind of God."] good concience, manifesting it in their CXiJiFESSION OF ASSEMBLY. 219 CHAP. XXV. Of marriage. 1. Marriage is to be between one man and one woman ; (Gen. ii. 24; Mai. ii. 15; Matt. xix. 5, 6) neither is it lawful for any man to have more than one wife, nor for any woman to have more than one husband, at the same time. 2. Marriage was ordained for the mutual help (Gen. ii. 18) of husband and wife, (Gen. i. 28) for the increase of mankind with a legitimate issue,^ and for (1 Cor. vii. 2, 9) prevent- ing of uncleanness. 3. It is lawful for (Heb. xiii. 4; 1 Tim. iv. 3) all sorts of people to marry, who are able with judgment to give their consent ; yet it is the duty of Christians (1 Cor. vii. 39) to marry [only] in the Lord ; and therefore such as profess the true religion should not marry with infidels, (Neh. xiii. 25, 26, 27) or idolaters ; neither should such as are godly be un- equally yoked, by marrying with such as are wicked in their life, or maintain damnable heresy. 4. Marriage ought not to be within the degrees of con- sanguinity (Lev. xviii.) or affinity, forbidden in, the word; nor can such incestuous marriage ever be made lawful by any law of man or consent of parties, (Matt. vi. 18 ; 1 Cor. V. 1) so as those persons may live together as man and wife. CHAP. XXVI. Of the church. 1. The catholic or universal church, which (with respect to the internal work of the Spirit, and truth of grace) may be called invisible, consists of the whole (Heb. xii. 23 ; Col. " [" And of the churcli with an holy seed." West, and Savoy Conf.] 220 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. i. 18 ; Eph. i. 20, 22, 23, and di. v. 23, 27, 32) uumbei- of the elect, that have been, are, or shall be gathered into one, under Christ, the head thereof; and is the spouse, the body, the fulness of him that filleth all in all. 2. All persons throughout the world, professing the faith of the gospel, and obedience unto God by Christ according unto it, not destroying their own profession by any eiTors everting the foundation, or unholiness of conversation, ( 1 Cor. i. 2 ; Acts xi. 26) are and may be called visible saints; (Rom. i. 7 ; Eph. i. 20, 21, 22) and of such ought all particular congregations to be constituted.^ 3. The purest churches under heaven are subject (1 Cor. XV.; Rev. ii. and ch. iii.) to mixture and error; and some have so degenerated as to become (Rev. xviii. 2; 2 Thess. ii. 11, 12) no churches of Christ, but synagogues of Satan; neverthe- less Christ always hath had, and ever shall have a (Matt xvi. 8; Psal. Ixxii. 17, and cii. 28 ; Rev. sii. 17) kingdom,* in this world to the end thereof, of such as believe in him, and make professions of his name. 4. The Lord Jesus Christ is the head of the church,^ in whom, by the appointment of the Father, (Col. i. 18 ; Matt, xxviii. 18, 19, 20 ; Eph. iv; 21, 22) all power for the calling, institution, order, or government of the church, is invested in a supreme and sovereign manner; neither can the pope of Rome, in any sense, be head thereof, but is (2 Thess. ii. 2 — 9) [no other] than antichrist, that man of sin and son of per- dition, that exalteth himself in the church against Christ, and ^ ["Are and may be called the * ["A visible kingdom." Savoy visible catholic church of Chi-ist ; al- Conf.] though as such it is not entrusted with the administration of any ordi- ' [" There is no other Head of the nances, or have any offices [officers] church but the Lord Jesus Chiist.' tK) rule or govern in or over the whole Savoy Conf.] body." Savoy Conf.] CONFESSION 01? ASSEMBLY. 221 all that is called God; whom the Lord shall destroy with the brightness of his coining. 5. In the execution of this power wherewith he is so en- trusted, the Lord Jesus calleth out of the world unto himself, through the ministry of his word, by his Spirit, (John x. 16, ch. xii. 32) those that are given unto him by his Father, that they may walk before him in all the (Matt, xxviii. 20) ways of obedience, which he prescribeth to them in his word. Those thus called, he commandeth to walk together in par- ticular societies, or (Matt, xviii. 15 — 20) churches, for their mutual edification, and the due performance of that public worship, which he requireth of them in the world. 6. The members of these churches are (Eom. i. 7 ; 1 Cor. 1, 2) saints by calling, -vasibly manifesting and evidencing (in and by their profession and walking) their obedience unto that call of Christ; and do willingly consent to walk together according to the appointment of Christ, giving up themselves to the Lord and one to another, by the will of God, (Acts ii. 41, 42; ch. v. 13, 14; 2 Cor. ix. 13) in professed subjection to the ordinances of the gospel. 7. To each of these churches thus gathered, according to his mind declared in his word, he hath given all that (Matt. xviii. IV, 18; 1 Cor. v. 4, 5, with v. 13; 2 Cor. ii. 6, 7, 8) power and authority, which is any way needful, for their carrying on that order in worship, and discipline, which he hath instituted for them to observe, with commands and rules for the due and right exerting and executing of that power. 8. A particular church gathered, and completely orga- nized, according to the mind of Christ, consists of officers, and members : and the officers appointed by Christ to be chosen and set apart by the church (so called and gathered) for the peculiar administration of ordinances, and execution of power or dutj% which he entrusts them with or calls 222 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. them to, to be continued to the end of the world, are (Acts XX. 17, with V. 28; Phil. i. 1) bishops or elders, and deacons. 6 9. The way appointed by Christ for the calling of any person, fitted and gifted by the Holy Spirit, unto the office of bishop or elder in the church is, that he be chosen there- unto by the common (Acts xiv. 23 ; see the original) suffrage of the church itself ; and solemnly set apart by fasting and prayer, with imposition of hands of the (1 Tim. iv. 14) eldei- ship of the church, if there be any before constituted therein: and of a deacon, (Acts vi. 3, o, 6) that he be chosen by the like suffrage, and set apart by prayer, and the like imposition of hands. 10. The work of pastors being constantly to attend the service of Christ in his churches, in the ministry of the word and prayer, (Acts vi. 4; Heb. xiii. 17) with watching for their souls, as they that must give an account to him, it is incumbent on the churches to whom they minister, not only to give them all due respect, (1 Tim. v. 17, 18; Gal. vi. 6, 7) but also to communicate to them of all their good things, according to their ability, so as they may have a comfortable supply, without being themselves (2 Tim. ii. 4) entangled in secular affairs; and may also be capable of exercising (1 Tim. iii. 2) hospitality towards others ; and this is required by the (1 Cor. ix. 6—14) law of nature, and by the express order of our Lord Jesus, who hath ordained, that they that preach the gospel should live of the gospel.' 11. Although it be incumbent on the bishops or pastors of the churches to be instant in preaching the word by way of office, yet the work of preaching the word is not so pecu- liarly confined to them, but that others also, (Acts xi. 1 9, 20, <= ["Are pastors, teachers, elders, ' [This paragraph is not found in and deacons." Savoy Conf.] the Savoy Conf.] CONFESSION OF ASSEMBLY. 223 21 ; 1 Pet. iv. 20, 21) gifted, and fitted by the Holy Spirit for it, and approved, and called by the church, may and ought to perform it.* 12. As all believers are bound to join themselves to par- ticular churches, when and where they have opportunity so to do; so aU that are admitted unto the privileges of a church, are also (1 Thess. v. 14 ; 2 Thess. iii. 6, 14, 15) under the censures and government thereof, according to the rule of Christ. 13. No church members, upon any offence taken by them, having performed their duty required of them towards the person they are offended at, ought to disturb any church order, or absent themselves from the assemblies of the church or administration of any ordinances, upon the account of such offence at any of their fellow members, but to wait upon Christ, (Matt. xviiL 15, 16, 17; Eph. iv. 2, 3) in the further proceeding of the church. 14. As each church, and all the members of it, are bound to (Eph. vi. 18; Psal. cxxii. 6) pray continually, for the good and prosperity of all the churches of Christ, in all places, and upon all occasions to further it, (every one within the bounds of their places and callings, in the exercise of their gifts and graces) so the churches (when planted by the providence of God so as they may enjoy opportunity and advantage for it) ought to hold (Kom. xvi. 1,2: 3 John 9, 10) communion amongst themselves for their peace, increase of love, and mutual edification. 15. In cases of diflSculties or differences, either in point of doctrine or administration, wherein either the churches in general are concerned, or any one church, in their peace, union, and edification ; or any member or members of any church are injured, in or by any proceedings In censures not " [" So that they give themselves up thereunto." Savoy Conf,] 224 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. agreeable to truth and order : it is accordin"; to the mind of Christ, that many churches holding communion together, do by their messengers meet" to consider (Acts xv. 2, 4, 6, and xxii. 23, 25) and give their advice in or about that matter in difference, to be reported to all the churches concerned ; howbeit, these messengers ^ assembled, are not entrusted with any church power properly so called; or with any jurisdiction over the churches themselves, to exercise any censures either over any churches or persons; or (2 Cor. i. 24; 1 John iv. 1) to impose their determination on the churches, or officers.^ CHAP. XXVII. On tJie communion of saints. 1. All saints that are united to Jesus Christ their Head, by his Spirit and faith, although they are not made thereby one person with him, have (1 John i. 3 ; John i. 16 ; Phil, iii. 10; Eom. vi. 5, 6) fellowship in his graces, sufferings, death, resurrection, and glory ; and being united to one another in love, they (Eph. iv. 15, 16 ; 1 Cor. xii. 7 ; 1 Cor. iii. 21, 22, 23) have communion in each other's gifts and graces, and are obliged to the performance of such duties, public and private, in an orderly way (1 Thess. v. 11, 14; Rom. i. 12 ; 1 John iii. 17, 18 ; Gal. vi. 10), as do conduce to their mutual good, both in the inward and outward man. 2. Saints by profession are bound to maintain an holy ' [" In a synod or council." Savoy striking. Among them is a para- ^°*-3 graph affirming, that a, church, in ' [Synods :•■ Savoy Conf.] which there happens to be no teach- ' [The divines of Savoy have ap- ing officers, cannot enjoy the admin- pended to the Westminster Confes- istration of the seals, nor can it "au- sion a lengthened statement of theii- thorise any so to do." The whole of views on Church polity. A portion the propositions may be seen in Han- is adopted in the baptist confession bury's Hist. Mem. iii. pp. 645—548.] now before us. The omissions ar re CONFESSION or ASSEMBLY. 225 fellowship and communion in the worship of God, and in performing such other spiritual services (Heb. x. 24, 25 ; with ch. iii. 12, 13) as tend to their mutual edification; as also in relieving each other in (Acts xii. 29, 30) outward things, according to their several abilities and necessities; which communion, according to the rule of the gospel, though especially to be exercised by them, in the relations wherein they stand, whether in (Eph. vi. 4) families, or (1 Cor. xii. 14 — 27) churches, yet, as God oiFereth opportunity, is to be extended to all the household of faith, even all those who in every place call upon the name of the Lord Jesus ; never- theless their communion one with another as saiuts, doth not take away or (Acts v. 4 ; Eph. iv. 28) infringe the title or propriety which each man hath in his goods and possessions. CHAR XXVIII. Of baptism and the Lord's supper.^ 1. Baptism and the Lord's supper are ordinances of positive and sovereign institution, appointed by the Lord Jesus, the only lawgiver, to be continued in his church (Matt, xxviii. 19, 20 ; 1 Cor. xi. 26) to the end of the world. 2. These holy appointments are to be administered by those only who are qualified, and thereunto called, according (Matt. xxviii. 19 ; 1 Cor. iv. 1) to the commission of Christ.* » [" Of the sacramentB :" West. represent him and his benefits ; and and Savoy C!onf.] to confirm our interest in him, and * [This article is framed on the solemnly to engage ua to the seivice 27th Article of the Confession of of God in Christ according to his 1676. It win suffice to quote the word." The Westminster Confession first sentence of the Savoy Confes- defines the object of sacraments to sion:— "Sacraments are holy signs be, "to put ■-■ visible difference be- and seals of the covenant of grace, tween those that belong unto the immediately instituted by Christ to church, and the rest of the world."] 226 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. CHAP. XXIX. Of baptism. 1. Baptism is an ordinance of the New Testament, ordained by Jesus Christ to be unto the party baptized a sign of his fellowship with him in his death (Eom. vi. 3, 4, 5 ; Col. ii. 12; Gal. iii. 27) and resurrection; of his being engrafted into him; of (Mark i. 4; Acts xxvi. 16) remission of sins; and of his (Rom. vi. 2, 4) giving up unto God, through Jesus Christ, to live and walk in newness of life. 2. Those who do actually profess (Mar. xvi. 16 ; Acts viii. 36, 37) repentance towards God, faith in and obedience to our Lord Jesus, are the only proper subjects of this ordi- nance. 3. The outward element to be used in this ordinance (Matt, xxviii. 19, 20, with Acts viii. 38) is water, wherein the party is to be baptized in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Spirit.^ 4. Immersion, or dipping of the person (Matt. iii. 16; John iii. 23) in water, is necessary to the due administration of this ordinance. CHAP. XXX. Of the Lord's supper. 1. The supper of the Lord Jesus was instituted by him the same night wherein he was betrayed, to be observed in his churches unto the end of the world, for the perpetual * [" Wherewith, the party .... by tered by pouiiag or sprinkling water a minister of the gospel lawfvOly upon the person. 4. Not only those called." West, and Savoy Conf.] that do actually profess faith in and " [The West, and SaToy Confes- obedience unto Christ, but also iu- aions say: — " 3. Dipping of the fants of one or both believing parents person into the water is not neces- are to be baptized j and those only."] sary ; but baptism is rightly adminis- CONFESSION OF ASSEMBLY. 227 remembrance, and showing forth the sacrifice of himself in his death, (1 Cor. xv. 23, 24, 25, 26) confirmation of the faith of believers in all the benefits thereof,^ their spiritual nourish- ment and growth in him, their further engagement in and to all duties which they owe unto him, (1 Cor. x. 16, 17, 21) and to be a bond and pledge of their communion with him and with each other. 2. In this ordinance ' Christ is not offered up to his Father, nor any real sacrifice made at all, for remission of sin of' the quick or dead, but only a memorial of that (Heb. ix. 25, 26, 28) one ofiering up of himself by himself upon the cross, once for all ; and a spiritual oblation of all (1 Cor. xi. 24 ; Matt. xxvi. 26, 27) possible praise unto God for the same. So that the popish sacrifice of the mass (as they call it) is most abominable, injurious to Christ's own only sacrifice, the alone propitiation for all the sins of the elect. 3. The Lord Jesus hath, in this ordinance, appointed his ministers topray, and bless the elements of bread and wine, and thereby to set them apart from a common to an holy use, and to take and break the bread; to take the cup (1 Cor. xi. 23, 24, 25, 26, &c.), and (they communicating also themselves) to give both to the communicants. 4. The denial of the cup to the people, worshipping the elements, the lifting them up, or carrying them about for adoration, and reserving them for any pretended religious use (Matt. xxvi. 26, 27, 28 ; Matt. xv. 9 ; Exod. xx. 4, 5) are all contrary to the nature of this ordinance, and to the insti- tution of Christ. 5. The outward elements in this ordinance, duly set apart to the uses ordained by Christ, have such relation to him » ["The sealing of all benefits ° [" Sacrament :" West and 5avoy thereof tmto true believers :" West. Conf.] and Savoy Conf.] q2 228 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. crucified, as that truly, although in terms used figuratively, ' they are sometimes called by the name of the things they represent, to wit, the (1 Cor. xi. 27) body and blood of Christ, albeit in substance and nature they still remain truly and only (I Cor. xi. 26 ; and v. 28) bread and wine as they were before. 6. That doctrine which maintains a change of the sub- stance of bread and wine, into the substance of Christ's body and blood (commonly called transubstantiation) by consecra- tion of a priest, or by any other way, is repugnant not to scripture (Acts iii. 21 ; Luke xxiv. 6; and v. 39) alone, but even to common sense and reason, overthroweth the (1 Cor. xi. 24, 25) nature of the ordinance, and hath been and is the cause of manifold superstitions, yea, of gross idolatries. -7. "Worthy receivers, outwardly partaking of the visible elements in this ordinance, do then also inwardly by faith, really and indeed, yet not carnally and corporally, but spi- ritually receive, and feed upon Christ crucified (1 Cor; x. 16; xi. 23 — 26), and all the benefits of his death ; the body and blood of Christ being then not corporally or carnally, but spiritually present to the faith of believers in that ordinance, as the elements themselves are to their outward senses. 8. All ignorant and ungodly persons, as they are unfit to enjoy communion (2 Cor. vi. 14, 15) with Christ, so are they, unworthy of the Lord's table, and cannot, without great sin against him, while they remain such, partake of these holy mysteries (1 Cor. xi. 29 ; Matt. vii. 6), or be admitted there- unto ; yea, whosoever shall receive unworthily, are guilty of the body and blood of the Lord, eating and drinking judg- ment to themselves. • [" As that truly, yet Bacramentally only," &c. West, and Savoy Conf.] COJIFESSION or ASSEMBLY. CHAP. XXXL 229 Of the state of man after death, and of tlie resurrection of the dead. 1 . The bodies of men, after death return to dust (Gen. iii. 19; Acts xiiL 36) and see corruption; but their souls, (which neither die nor sleep) having an immortal subsistence, immediately (Eccl. xii. 7) return to God who gave them : the the souls of the righteous, being then made perfect in holiness, are received into paradise, where they are with Christ, and behold ' the face of God, in light (Luke xxiii. 43 ; 2 Cor. v. 1, 6, 8 ; PhiL i. 23 ; Heb. xii. 23) and glory, waiting for the full redemption of their bodies ; and the souls of the wicked are cast into hell, where they remaia in torment and utter darkness, reserved to ( Jude 6, 7 ; 1 Pet. iii. 1 9 ; Luke xvi. 23, 24) the judgment of the great day ; besides these two places for souls separated from their bodies, the scripture acknowledgeth none. 2. At the last day, such of the saints as are found alive ' shall not sleep, but be (1 Cor. xv. 51, 52; 1 Thess. iv. 17) changed ; and all the dead shall be raised up with the self- same bodies, and. (Job xix. 26, 27) none other; although with different (1 (J!or. xv. 42, 43) qualities, which shall be united again to their souls for ever. 3. The bodies of the unjust shall, by the power of Christ, be raised to dishonour ; the bodies of the just, by his Spirit, unto honour (Acts xxiv. 15; John v. 2S, 29; PhiL iii. 21) and be made Qonformable to his own glorious body. * [" Are received into the tighest ' [" Of the saints :" omitted in heavens, where they behold," &c. West, and Savoy Conf.] West, and Savoy Conf.] 230 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. CHAP. XXXII. Of the last judgment. 1. God hath appointed a day wherein he will judge the world in righteousness, by (Acts xvii. 31 ; John v. 22, 27) Jesus Christ, to whom all power and judgment is given of the Father; in which day not only the (I Cor. vi. 3 ; Jude 6) apostate angels shall be judged, but likewise all persons that have lived upon the earth shall appear before the tribunal of Christ, (2 Cor. v. 10 ; Eccles. xii. 14 ; Matt. xii. 36 ; Rom. xiv. 10, 12 ; Matt. xxv. 32, &c.) to give an account of their thoughts, words, and deeds, and to receive according to what they have done in the body, whether good or evil. 2. The end of God's appointing this day, is for the mani- festation of the glory of his mercy, in the eternal salvation of the elect ; (Rom. ix. 22, 23) and of his justice, in the eternal damnation of the reprobate, who are wicked and disobedient ; for then shall the righteous go into everlasting life, and re- ceive that fulness of joy and glory, with everlasting reward, in the presence (Matt. xxv. 21, 34 ; 2 Tim. iv. 8) of the Lord : but the wicked, who know not God and obey not the gospel of Jesus Christ, shall be cast into eternal torments, and (Matt. xxv. 46; Mark ix. 48; 2 Thess. i. 7 — 10) punished with everlasting destruction, from the presence of the Lord, and from the glory of his power, 3. As Christ would have us to be certainly persuaded that there shall be a day of judgment, both (2 Cor. v. 10, 11) to deter all men from sin, and for the greater (2 Thess. i. 3, 6, 7) consolation of the godly in their adversity, so will he have that day unknown to men, that they may shake off all carnal security, and be always watchful, because they know not at what hour the (Mark xiii. 35 — 37 ; Luke xiii. 35, 36) Lord will come, and may ever be prepared to say, (Rev. xxii. 20), Come, Lord Jesus ; come quickly. Amen. CONFESSION OF ASSEMBLY. 231 AN APPENDIX. Whosoever reads and impartially considers what we have in our foregoing confession declared, may readily per- ceive that we do not only concentre with all other true Christians on the word of God (revealed in the scriptures of truth), as the foundation and rule of our faith and worship ; but that we have also industriously endeavoured to manifest, that in the fundamental articles of Christianity we mind the same things, and have therefore expressed our belief in the same words that have on the like occasion been spoken by other societies of Christians before us. This we have done, that those who are desirous to know the principles of religion which we hold and practise may take an estimate from ourselves (who jointly concur in this work), and may not be misguided, either by undue reports, or by the ignorance or errors of particular persons, who going under the same name with ourselves, may give an occasion of scandalizing the truth we profess. And although we do differ from our brethren who are paedobaptistSj in the subject and administration of baptism, and such other circumstances as have a necessary dependence on our observance of that ordinance, and do frequent our own assemblies for our mutual edification, and discharge of those duties and services which we owe unto God, and, in his fear, to each other ; yet we would not be from hence miscon- strued, as if the discharge of our own consciences herein did any ways disoblige, or alienate our affections or conversa- tions from any others that fear the Lord ; but that we may and do, as we have opportunity, participate of the labours of those whom God hath endued with abilities above ourselves, and qualified and called to the ministry of the word, earnestly desiring to approve ourselves to be such as follow after peace 232 CONFESSIONS OF FAITH. with holiness; and therefore we always keep that blessed Irenicum, or healing word of the apostle before our eyes ; If in any thing ye he otherwise minded, God shall reveal even this unto you : nevertheless, whereto we have already attained, let us walk by the same rule, let us mind the same thing, Phil. iii. 15, 16. Let it not therefore be judged of us, (because much hath been written on this subject, and yet we continue this our practice different from others) that it is out -of obstinacy ; but rather, as the truth is, that we do herein, according to the best of our understandings, worship God out of a pure mind, yielding obedience to his precept, in that method which we take to be most agreeable to the scriptures of truth and primitive practice. It would not become us to give any «uch intimation as should carry a semblance that what we do in the service of God is with a doubting conscience, or with any such temper of mind, that we do thus for the present with a reservation that we win do otherwise hereafter upon more mature de- liberation; nor have we any cause so to do, being fully persuaded that what we do is agreeable to the will of God. Yet we do heartily propose this, that if any of the servants of our Lord Jesus shall, in the spirit of meekness, attempt to convince us of any mistake, either in judgment or prac- tice, we shall diligently ponder his arguments, and account him our chiefest friend that shall be an instrument to con- vert us from any error that is in our ways, for we cannot wittingly do any thing against the truth, but all things for the truth. And therefore we have endeavoured seriously to consider what hath been already offered for our satisfaction in this point 5 and are loth to say any more, lest we should be esteemed desirous of renewed contests thereabout ; yet, for- asmuch as it may justly be expected that we show some COKi-ESSION OF ASSEMBLY. 233 reason why we cannot acquiesce in what hath been urged against us, we shall, with as much brevity as may consist with plainness, endeavour to satisfy the expectation of those that shall peruse what we now publish in this matter also. 1. As to those Christians who consent with us, that repent- ance from dead works and faith towards God and our Lord Jesus Christ, is required in persons to be baptized; and do therefore supply the defect of the infant (being incapable of making confession of either) by others, who do undertake these things for it. Although we do find by church history that this hath been a very ancient practice, yet considering that the same scripture (Eom. xiv. 4, 10, 12, 23) which does caution us against censuring our brother, with whom we shall aU stand before the judgment-seat of Christ, does also instruct us, that every one of us shall give an account of himself to God, and whatsoever is not of faith is sin ; therefore we cannot for our own parts be persuaded in our own minds to build such a practice as this upon an unwritten tradition; but do rather choose, in all points of faith and worship, to have recourse to ^ the holy scriptures for the information of our judgment and regulation of our practice ; being well assured that a conscientious attending thereto is the best way to prevent and rectify our defects and errors. 2 Tim. iii. 16, 17. And if any such case happen to be debated between Christians, which is not plainly determinable by the scrip- tures, we think it safest to leave such things imdeoided, until the second coming of our Lord Jesus; as they did in the church of old, until there should arise a priest with Urim and Thummim, that might certainly inform them of the mind of God thereabout. Ezra ii. 62, 63, 2. As for those our Christian brethren, who do ground their arguments for infants' baptism, upon a presumed foederal holiness or church membership, we conceive they are deficient in this — that albeit this covenant holiness and membership 234 OONPESSIONS OP FAITH. should be as is supposed, in reference unto the infants of believers, yet no command for infant baptism does imme- diately and directly .result from such a quality or relation. All instituted worship receives its sanction from the pre- cept, and is to be thereby governed in all the necessary circumstances thereof. So it was in the covenant that God made with Abraham and his seed, the sign whereof was appropriated only to the male, notwithstanding that the female seed, as well as the male, were comprehended in the covenant and part of the church of God ; neither was this sign to be affixed to any male infant till he was eight days old, albeit he was within the covenant from the first moment of his life ; nor could the danger of death, or any other supposed necessity, warrant the circumcising of him before the set time, nor was there any cause for it; the commination of being cut off from his people being only upon the neglect or contempt of the precept. Kighteous Lot was nearly related to Abraham in the flesh, and contemporary with him, when this covenant was made ; yet inasmuch as he did not descend from his loins, nor was of his household family (although he was of the same -household of faith with Abraham), yet neither Lot himself nor any of his posterity (because of their descent from him) were signed, with the signature of this covenant that was made with Abrahami and his seed. This may suffice to show that where there was both an express covenant and a sign thereof, such a covenant as did. separate the persons with whom it was made and aU their offspring from all the rest of the world, as a people holy unta the Lord, and did constitute them the visible church of God (though notcomprehensive of all the faithful in the world)/ yet the sign of this covenant was not affixed to all the per- sons that were within this covenant, nor to any of them till CONFESSION OF ASSEMBLY. 235 the prefixed season ; nor to other faithful servants of God that were not of descent from Abraham. And, consequently, that it depends purely upon the will of the lawgiver to deter- mine what shall be the sign of his covenant, unto whom, at what season, and upon what terms it shall be affixed. If our brethren do suppose baptism to be the seal of the covenant which God makes with every believer (of which the scriptures are altogether silent), it'is not our concern to con- tend with them herein; yet we conceive the seal of that covenant is the indwelling of the Spirit of Christ in the , particular and individual persons in whom he resides, and nothing else. Neither do they or we suppose that baptism is in any such manner substituted in the place of circumcision, as to have the same (and no other) latitude, extent, or terms than circumcision had. For that was suited only for the male children : baptism is an ordinance suited for every believer, whether male or female. That extended to all the males that were born in Abraham's house, or bought with his money, equally with the males that proceeded from his own loins ; but baptism is not so far extended in any true Chris- tian church that we know of, as to be administered to all the poor infidel servants that the members thereof purchase for their service, and introduce into their families, nor to the children born of them in their house. But we conceive the same parity of reasoning may hold for the ordinance of baptism as for that of circumcision (Exod, xii. 49), viz., one law for the stranger as for the home-bom. If any desire to be admitted to all the ordinances and privileges of God's house, the door is open ; upon the same terms that any one person was ever admitted to all or any of those privileges that belong to the Christian churchy may allper-r sons of right challenge the like admission. ' , - i' . ' - As for that text of scripture (Ebm. iv. 11), ».He received cir- cumcision, a sea} of the righteotisness of the faith, which he had 236 CONFESSION OF FAITH. yet heing uncircumcised ; we conceive, if the apostle's scope in that place be duly attended to, it will appear that no argument can be taken from thence to enforce infant bap- tism. And forasmuch as we find a full and fair account of those words given by the learned Dr. Liightfoot (a man not to be suspected of partiality in this controversy), in his Hor. Hebrai. on the 1 Cor. vii. 19, p. 42, 43, we shall transcribe his words at large, without any comment of our own upon them. Circmncisio nihil est ratione habitd temporis, jam enim evanuerat, adim- pleto prsecipue ejus fine ob quem f uerat instituta ; istum finem exhibet apostolus in verbis istis, Rom. iv. 11. aipgayiSa t^q StizcuoiTVVTjQ riyff Tritr- Tcwc Trie Iv aKpo^viTTia. At Tereor ne a plerisque versionibus non satis aptentur, ad finem «ircumoisiqnis, et scopum apostoli, dum ab iis interseri- tur aliquid de suo. Circumcision is nothing, if we re- spect the time, for now it was without use, that end of it being especially fulfilled for which it had been insti- tuted : this end the apostle declares in these words, Eom. iv. 11, atppayi- Sa, &c. But I fear that by most translations they are not sufficiently suited to the end of circumcision and the scope of the apostle, whilst something of their own is by them inserted. And after the doctor hath represented divers versions of the words, agreeing for the most part in sense with that which we have in our bibles, he thus proceeds:— Alix in eundem sensiun, ac si cir- cumcisio daretur Abrahamo in sigil- lum justitise istius, quam ille habuit, dum adhuc foret praeputiatus ; quod non negabimus aliqualiter verum esse, at credimus circumcisionem longe alio prsecipue respesisse. Liceat Tnihi verba sic reddere : et siguum accepit circumcisionis, sigil- lum justitiaj fidei, quae futura in prae- putio; quoe futura dico, non quae fuerafc. Non quae |fuerat Abrahamo adhuc prseputiato, fied quae futura Other versions are to the same pur- pose ; as if circumcision was given to Abraham for a seal of that righteous- ness which he had, being yet uncir- cumcised, which we will not deny to be in some seuse true ; but we believe that circiuncision had chiefiy a far different respect. Give me leave tl;us to render the words : —And he received the sign of circiuncision, a seal of the righteous- ness of faith, which was to be in the unoircumcision. "Which was to be (I say), not which had been ; not that CONTESSION OF ASSEMBLY. 237 semini ejus prseputiato, id e3t,geiiti- libuB, fidem olim Abraham! imitatuiis. Nunc adverte bene qu4 occaaioue instituta Abrahamo circiimoisio, po- nens tibi ante oculos historiam ejus. Gen. xviL Fit prime ei haec promissio, Multa- tarum gentium ens tu pater (quo- nam sensu explicat apostolus, isto capite) et subinde subjungitur duplex sigiUum rei corroborandEe; immuta- tio scilicet nominis Abrami in Abra- hamum ; et institutio circumcisionis : ver. 4. Ecce Tnilii tecum est fcedus, eris tu pater multarum gentium. Quare vocatum est nomen ejus Abra- hamus ! In sigUlationem hujus pro- missionis. Tu pater eris multarum gentium. Et quare instituta ei cir- cumcisio ? In sigillationem ejusdem promissionis. Tu pater eris multarum gentiiun. Ita ut hie sit sensus apos- toli, institutioni circumcisionis cou- gruentissimus ; accepit sigDum cir- cumciBiouis, sigUlum jiistitiae fidei, quam olim erat incircumcido (vel Gentiles) habitura et adeptura. Duplex semen erat Abrabamo, na- turale, Judaeonmi; et fidele, genti- . Uum credentium : signatur naturale eigne circumcisionis, primo quidemin Hui distinctionem, .ab omnibus aliis gentibus, dum ese non adhuc forent semen AbraJiami ; at praecipue in memoiiain justificationis gentium per fidem, cum tandem forent ejus semen; Cessatura ergo merito erat circumci- sioj cum introducerentur Gentries ad whicb Abraham had whilst he was yet iincircumcised, but that which his uucircumcised seed should have, that is, the Gentiles, who in time to come should imitate the faith of Abraham. Now consider well on what occasion circumcision was instituted unto Ab- raham, setting before thine eyes the history thereo£ Gen. xvii. This promise is first made unto him, Thxm shaU be the father of many Tuitions (in what sense the apostle explaineth in that chapter), and then there is subjoined a double seal for Jihe confirmation of the thing, to wit, the change of the name Abram into Abraham, and the institu- tion of circumcision, ver. ijBekoldf.as for vie, my covenant is with thee, and thou shalt be the father of ma/ny tio- lions. Wherefore was his name called Abraham ? For the sealing of his promise. Thou shaU be the father of mAiny nations. And wherefore was circumcision instituted to him ? ' For the sealing of the same promise. Thou shalt be the father of many n/Uions. So that this is the sense of the apostle, most agreeable to the in- stitution of circumcision ; he received the sign of circumcision, a seal of the righteousness of faith, which in time to come the unciroumcision (or the Gentiles) should have and obtain. Abraham had a twofold seed, natu- ral, of the Jews ; and, faithful, of the believing Gentiles : his natural seed was signed with the sign of circum- cision, first, indeed, for the, distin- guishing of them firom all other na- tions, whilst they as yet were not the seed of Abraham^ but -especially for the memorial of the justification of the GentUes by faith, when at length they should become his seed. There- 238 CONTESSIOUS OP FAITH. fidem, quippe quod tunc finem suum fore, circumcision was of right to ultimum ac prsecipuum obtinuerat, et cease when the Gentiles were brought perinde 17 jrcpiTOfiij ovSkv, into the faith, forasmuch as then it had obtained its last and chief end, and thenceforth circvmicision is no- thing. Thus far he, which we earnestly desire may be seriously weighed, for we plead not his authority, but the evidence of truth in his words. 3. Of whatsoever nature the holiness of the children, mentioned (1 Cor. vii. 12), be, yet they who do conclude that all such children (whether infants, or of riper years), have from hence an immediate right to baptism, do as we conceive, put more into the conclusion than wiU be found in the premises. For although we do not determine positively concerning the apostles' scope in the holiness here mentioned, so as to say, it is this, or that, and no other thing ; yet, it is evident, that the apostle does by it determine not only the lawfulness, but the expedience also of a believer's cohabition with an unbeliever in the state of marriage. And we do think that, although the apostle's asserting of the unbelieving yoke-fellow to be sanctified by the believer should carry in it somewhat more than is in the bare marriage of two infidels, because although the marriage covenant have a divine sanction so as to make the wedlock of two unbelievers a lawful action, and their conjunction and cohabition in that respect undefiled, yet there might be no ground to suppose from thence, that both or either of their persons.are thereby sanc- tified; and the apostle urges the cohabition of a believer with an infidel in the state of wedlock from this ground, that the unbelieving husband is sanctified by the believing wife; nevertheless, here you have the influence of a believer's faith ascending froni aja inferior to a superior relation ; from the CONFESSION OF ASSEMBLY. 239 wife to the husband, who is her head, before it can descend to their offspring. And, therefore, we say, whatever be the nature or extent of the holiness here Intended, we conceive it cannot convey to the children an immediate right to bap- tism ; because it would then be of another nature, and of a larger extent, than the root and original from whence it is derived. For it is clear, by the apostle's argument, that holi- ness cannot be derived to the child from the sanctity of one parent only ; if either father or mother be (in the sense intended by the apostle) unholy or unclean, so will the child be also; therefore, for the production of a holy seed, it is necessary that both the parents be sanctified. And this the apostle positively asserts in the first place to be done by the believing parent although the other be an unbeliever, and then, consequentially, from thence argues, the holiness of their children. Hence, it follows, that as the children have no other holiness than what they derive from their parents ; so neither can they have any right by this holiness to any spiritual privi- lege, but such as both their parents did also partake of; and therefore, if the unbelieving parent (though sanctified by the believing parent) have not thereby a right to baptism, neither can we conceive that there is any such privilege derived to the children by their birth-holiness. Besides, if it had been the usual practice in the apostles' days for the father or mother, that did believe, to bring all their children with them to be baptized, then the holiness of the believing Corinthians' children would not at all: have been in question when this epistle was written ; but might have been argued from their passing under that ordinance, which tepresented their new birth, although they had derived no holiness from their parents by their first birth ; and would have lain as an exception against the apostle's infereneej else were yn vomit, and the Sow that was washed to waUow again in the mire. London, Printed for Francis Tyton, and are to Tae sold at the three Daggers in Fleet street, neer the Imier-Temple-gaie. 1650. To all the churches of God sanctified in Christ Jesus, called to be saints, with all that in every place profess the name of Jesus Christ our Lord, both theirs and ours. • [This is the first edition, Snhae- rising sect of Quakers. The manner quent editions were generally printed in which they disturbed the churches With the Confession of Faith of 1646. may be seen in the Broadmead and Thus it is found as an Appendix to Fenstanton Records. Bunyan's first the editions of the Confession of publication, "Some Gospel Truths 1653 and 1652. It is especially di- opened," was directed against the rected against the Ranters and the same parties.] 294 PUBLIC DOOUMENTS. Beloved Brethren, Having these many years, through the grace and free mercy of our God, been kept in the profession of the name of Christ contained in the holy scriptures of the prophets and apostles, and finding the exceeding benefit and comfort of walking with God in some measure suitable to what he hath made known unto us ; aud well knowing that we are called to live in the last ages of the world, wherein iniquity abounds, and the love of many waxeth cold; as likewise considering those peculiar times spoken of in the 2ud of Tim. iii. 1, &c., are come upon us, wherein men who some- times have made large profession of God and godliness are turned aside to commit aU manner of uncleanness with greediness, having turned the grace of our Lord Jesus Christ into lasciviousness, calling darkness light and light darkness, by means of whom the way of truth is evil spoken of, and many poor souls through temptations ready to quit their professions, and to be taken with their snares ; we thought it our duty to declare our utter dislike, abhorring, and de- testation, of all such evil persons and ways, who shall under any pretence whatsoever plead for or practise any way of ungodliness. And having been, through the goodness of our God, enabled to discern the secret and subtle designs and snares of Satan, which he hath laid to entrap poor souls in, by carrying them from step to step until they have been wholly captivated in his snares and fitted by him to do him service : — We could do no less than, according to that measure of light we have received from the Lord, to discover his wiles and stratagems, and to caution all that profess the fear of the Lord to watch over their own hearts and ways, and to take heed lest they fall into the same condemnation. For this we have found, that that way which God in his infinite wisdom taketh to bring souls unto himself by, viz.. HEART liLEEDIKGS. 295 the presenting unto men his great love in giving Jesus Christ to suffer death, and his great salvation to all that believe in his name, Satan, that old serpent, through his instruments, under the specious pretence of beating men off from all false rests, endeavours with all his strength to oppose and make void; persuading the sons and daughters of men that what is declared concerning the death of Christ at Jerusalem, and his bearing our iniquities in his own body upon the cross, is but a mere history and shadow, that the scriptures are but a letter, and the ordinances of God but fleshly forms, thereby labouring to beget in people's minds a contempt and slight esteem of Christ, his word, and or- dinances ; and, that he might cheat them to purpose, tells them of a God within, and a Christ within, and a word within ; and that God, and Christ, and they are are one, without any true distinct knowledge of the true meaning of that which is expressed, whereby poor souls, with great and swelling words of vanity, triumph in a great mystery of mere nothing but emptiness and confusion, speaking things whereof they know not. And many poor souls knowing such expressions to be scripture phrases, do greedily embrace them, without a true, distinct, and clear understanding the sense of what is spoken, having the persons of those who speak such language in great admira- tion, as the chief, tender, charitable, knowing, high, and spiritual Christians. Whereas, indeed, although the words spoken by them are many of them true in themselves (with- out which Satan could not so effectually deceive), as, that God and Christ and the Spirit dwell in us, and that God and Christ and the saints are one ; yet are we to understand this union to be only in a way of relation through participa- tion of the same Spirit, and this dwelling to be only in respect of grace, and powerful operation and influence, working in the hearts of believers, according to the tenor of the new covenant, in making men holy and humble, purifying their 296 public; documents. hearts, causing them to walk in all good conscience towards God and man ; all which by them is trampled under foot, and another kind of union and indwelling driven at in their dis- courses, which although covertly expressed, until by craft and subtlety they have prepared the hearts of simple and unstable souls, to receive whatsoever they shall suggest unto them, yet then is openly discovered, being indeed the root of all bitterness, and desperate profaneness, and blasphemy, that can be imagined in the world, for from thence they con- clude, that themselves are God and Christ, and what God is they are, and what they are God is. For, say they, there is no spirit but one, and so deny any created angel or spirit, holding upon the sanae account the living soul in man to be uncreated, and so consequently to be God himself, and not created by God. Now this being the groundwork of their delusion, the building is answerable. For first, concluding the reasonable soul to be God : Secondly, they affirm that this soul, being clothed with their human bodies, or flesh, is Christ, or God, or God in flesh. Hereupon they imagine that Jesus Christ, spoken of in the gospel as being born of the Virgin Mary, accused by the Jews, delivered by Pilate to be crucified, dying at Jerusalem upon the cross, rising the third day/ and ascending into heaven, is only to be understood parabolicaUy, or figuratively, speaking of one thing and intending another;'* pointing at, and prefiguring a work only within us, conceiving the Virgin Mary, the Jews, Pilate, Jerusalem, the cross, Christ rising ' [Mr. Burton in his preface to fest in their flesh ; or else make his Bunyan's piece, thus describes the human nature with the fuhiess of the same parties : — " This [doctrine] is Godhead in it, to he but a type of also quite contrary to those commonly God, to be manifest in the saints, called Familists, Ranters, Quakers, or and so his human nature was to be others, who either deny Christ to be a laid aside after he had ofiered it up real man without them, blasphemously on the cross.*' Bunyan's Works fancying him to be only God mani- Offer's edit. ii. 139.] HEART BLEEDINGS. 297 and ascending, spoken of in the scriptures, to be all within them, and no such thing substantially, or in truth without. As they conclude all things spoken of Christ to be but in a typical or figurative manner, intending and typifying out this God within, or Grod incarnate in their flesh, still meaning their reasonable souls, conceiving this to be the substance of all those shadows ; so also upon this ground they are forced to conclude the whole New Testament, with all the doctrines, laws, rules, and administrations of the same, to be but a shadow or figure, holding forth a substance within ; as, for instance, Moses and Aaron being but figures of the substan- tial Saviour and priest to come, so the administrations of Moses as Llosaical, were but fleshly and carnal administra- tions, to be abolished when the substance was come, they being only shadows of good things to come. In like manner do they understand Christ in his person to be but a shadow of Christ within, and all his heavenly and spiritual gospel to be but a letter and carnal history put to an end and abolished, when they once come to apprehend that the substance of aU is within. They coming also to believe that the soul is Grod, do thence infer that they are perfect, and that they are in as happy a state as can be ; and for this they urge (1 Cor. xv. 24 — 28) to show when the kingdom is delivered up to the Father, all his people come to a more immediate enjoyment of God the Father, and then Christ ceaseth his mediatorship, and consequently all his New Testament ceaseth. Now they conclude that all this is accomplished when they come to discern there is but one Spirit, and their soul that Spirit, which is God, and then they are in the possession of all things. And seeing the scripture declares that before our full pos- session of God and glory, there must be a temporal death, and resurrection of the body, and eternal judgment, they, upon the former grounds, judging themselves already glori- 298 ruJSLic documents. fied, do understand this death of the body in all sucii scrip- tures mystically, and that the resuireetion and eternal judg- ment are passed already in the soul, as Hymoneus and Philetus did (2 Tim. ii. 18 compared with 1 Tim. i. 19). Thence also they conclude that faith and justification by Christ, together with all the ordinances of Christ, are abo- lished, as fleshy forms, like unto Christ that appointed them, above and without all which they triumphantly (in their own fancies) live, when they once have attained this supereminent life, (as they speak) of being in the full fruition of God, comprehending that infinite being (which they blasphemously affirm themselves to do), intruding themselves into things they are altogether ignorant of. Hereupon is it that they, as Peter saith, scofi'at any second coming of Christ (2 Pet. iii. 3, 4), and mock at the holy scriptures, those heavenly oracles of God, denying them to be the word of God, or that law by which they ought to conform their lives, conceiving and uttering that there is no law nor rule but what is in man, his light being his only law, that is to say, whatever that spirit that dwells within (which they call God within) dictates to them that ought to be done by them ; strengthening them- selves with this opinion, that there is no sin but what con- tradicts a man's own light (which is a man's only law), and sin is only sin to him that thinks it so, and that there is no hell but that torment that men sustain through crossing their own light (which God knows is nothing but thick darkness). From these principles the desperately wicked and deceitful hearts of men, fortified in their sins, having now their con- science seared with a hot iron, account it their only misery and hell, that they are troubled at anything, be it never so abominable. Thus casting off all trouble and remorse for sin, they follow the law of their own mind, (as they needs must, conceiving their own souls to be the only eternal God), and whatsoever their evil hearts are naturally inclined to, whether liE^VRT BLEEDINGS. 299 drunkenness, cursing, swearing, or whoredom (althougli for a time their principles do not put such horrid impieties in execution), yet at length being violently hurried on through the assistance of the strong impulsions and restless sugges- tions and instigations of the devil (the judgments of God being also heightened upon them), they now commit the same with greediness, and that with such a high hand, as they account it their perfection, and the highest pitch of their glory, to give up themselves to such abominations ; pleading for them, affirming that they have made a league and covenant with sin, death, and hell, and have communion with God in all these, seeing all these, and whatever evUs can be imagined, ([are] reconciled to God ; and so, good, accounting all their actions for good, being acted by their own spirits, which (as they think) are God, saying, that God (but truly not God, but their own accursed spirits) willed that they should curse and swear, and be drunk, and fill themselves with all uncleanness ; which they esteem to be perfect righteousness, calling that holiness and righteousness which consists in a spotless conformity to the laws of Christ revealed in the scripture, which curbs the insolency of the flesh, and- the lusts of the heart, a plaguey and nasty holiness that must be destroyed ; so that those amongst them that can, with the greatest impudency, without the least check or control of conscience, commit the most horrid abominations (which we tremble to think of), they are the most perfect, and the most swallowed up in the will of God. To justify these their abominations, they say the angels of God sware with glory and majesty, which angels are God in them (for all created angels they deny), who therefore may swear as they will, and that witb glory and majesty ; yea, so great is their thraldom and captivity, that now the prince of the power of the air, that rules in the hearts of these children of disobe- dience, hath so hv the mastery and dominion over them, as 300 PUBLIC DOCUMENTS. that they are ready, not only to fight against God himself, in his spiritual ordinances, but against civil societies, violating the bonds of marriage, and laws of families, against the very principles and light of nature, which common justice (re- maining amongst the heathens) would soon adjudge to merit severe punishment ; and certainly those that shall thus trans- gress all civil bonds, do not only lie liable to the just and fearful judgment of God, but justly incur the punishment of the rulers of this world. Having thus laid open some of the principles and evil practices of these men, even that root of bitterness, from which such their sinful branches grow, by which every one Avhose eyes are opened, may discern what a fearful thing it is to leave the holy word of God, and give heed to the motions of a deceitful heart, and to the dictates of a lying spirit : we shall now endeavour briefly to make manifest the sandiness and dangerousness of the foundation whereupon these things are buUt, which we shall essay to do by proving that the soul of man is not God, but a creature, created and made by God, which will appear both by scripture and reason, if you consider : — 1. That God is incomprehensible, the heaven of heavens cannot contain him ; but the soul of man is comprehended and contained in the body. 2. God is Almighty, but the soul of man is not ; whatever God will, that he can do ; but man desires many things, and hath not power to accomplish them. 3. God knoweth himself, and all things, the secrets of all hearts, things past, present, and to come ; but alas ! the soul of man knows not the being of itself, "nor of the least crea- ture; he knows not what is done in another house next to him. 4. The soul is made and created (1 Cor. xv), Tlie first Adam was made a living soul ; (Jer. xxxviil. 16), it is HEART BREEDINGS. 301 written, As the Lord liveth that made us this soul. Now to be made and created argues a beginning, but God is without beginning ; therefore the soul cannot be God. 5. God is the God of the spirits of all flesh (Numb. xvi. 22), there is a spirit in the body, of which God is the Father, (Heb. xii. 9), which God forms within man (Zech. xii. 1), with which spirit the Spirit of God bears witness (Rom. viii. 16), which plainly proves our spirit or soul to be a creature. The truth of which further appears in that God can destroy the soul, or cast it into hell fire, (Matt. x. 28), in that the soul may be converted (Psalm xix. 7), in that it stands in need of deliverance and redemption (Psa. xiii. 19, 34, 22,49, 8). But now God cannot be destroyed, neither needs he any redemp- tion at all. By this is it clear that man's soul is not God, and if not his soul much less is his body, that is subject to such variety of distempers, and so neither body nor soul. Oh, therefore, what a horrid thing is it for men to affirm they are God, that made and created all things, that governs the world and the like, and to father all their abominations upon the Lord, thinking him to be altogether such a one as them- selves are ! From hence we may safely conclude : 1. That if the spirit be created by God and is united to. the body, then those actions that are done by the body are the actions of the man. Oh, how some men, fighting against the light, cry out, that it is God in man only that acts, that shall be saved, and the like ; whereas it is evident that it is the man that acts, either good things, viz. the man that believeth, prayeth, conformeth, and is blessed of God ; or it is the man that sins and walks in disobedience, which man is the subject of destruction. 2. That if the spirit be created by God, it must be subject to. the will and law of the Creator. Things created are for the praise of the Creator. We are made by God to show forth his praise, and by our obedience to declare ourselves to be 302 PDBLIC DOCUMENTS. his children, we are not left at liberty to run from God ; this was that that involved Adam at first in misery, and still keeps his offspring in sorrow and confusion. 3. That sin is the detection, variation from, or the trans- gression of the law of our Creator, and not of our own wills ; when we do the things God forbids, or leave undone the things commanded, we sin against God the Lord, the Creator of soul and body. From the not right understanding of the creature's subjec- tion and relation unto God, flow also those vain allegorizings of those texts of scripture that speak of Christ himself. For if we search the scripture we shall see clearly that Christ Jesus was not a figure or shadow of a substance to be enjoyed now or hereafter (as these men dream), but the true substantial good itself, the true mediator, God and man, the substance of all figures and shadows under the law, which was a schoolmaster unto Christ (Gal. iii. 24). The apostle tells us, the administrations under the law were a shadow of good things to come, the body or substance whereof was Christ, or was in Christ. Now it is against common sense and reason, that one shadow should type out another^ and that as carnal and fleshly as itself j but the contrary hereof is most certain, for Moses and Joshua, being typical saviours, re- deeming the temporal Israel out of Egypt into earthly Canaan, must needs hold out a substantial Saviour, that most effectually shall redeem the spiritual Israel ; for, saith the apostle. He is able to save to the uttermost all tlmt come to God by him, seeing he ever liveth to make intercession for them (Heb. vii. 5). He is the alpha and omega, the begin- ning and the ending, the first and the last (Rev. i. 18), who said to John, Fear not, for I was dead, and am alive for ever- more, Amen. And I have the keys of hell and of death. This Jesus is not only true man as touching flesh, but also God over all blessed for ever, or the most High God (Rom. HEART BLEEDINGS. 303 ix. 5). John the Baptist testifying of Christ (John iii. 31), saith. He that cometh from above is above all, and this is true of Christ as touching his Godhead, who also is truly man, soul and body, consisting of a human soul and fleshly body, and that after his resurrection, as appears (Luke xxiv. 39). In reference to the conjunction of both human and divine nature, he saith, I lay doion my life and I take it up again ; as man he died, as God he raised himself from the dead. Now that any should be so vile and wretched as to count the ever- blessed Lord, who is the most high and blessed Saviour, a fleshly form and shadow, because, according to the infinite wisdom and love of God, he assumed man's nature, that he might thereby become a more fit and suitable Saviour unto them, we are wounded in our souls to think thereof, and tremble to think what hardness of heart, ingratitude and blindness of mind, such souls are given up to ; and though they may talk of being above the dispensation of Christ, the kingdom being in them resigned up to the Father, they say they know not what. For before the ofiice of Christ's media- torship ceases, and the kingdom be resigned to the Father, the scripture expressly tells us, all enemies must be subdued under his feet (Psa. ex. 1 ; Psa. viii. 6 ; 1 Cor. xy. 24, 25 ; Heb. ii. 6, 7) ; which is not yet effected, for Christ's enemies, viz. the devil, sin, Babylon, antichrist, the opposite oppress- ing civil powers of the world, death, and the grave, and the rule and authority they bear rule with, are not yet wholly by Christ put down ; therefore the office of his mediatorship still stands in force. Hence we may safely conclude ; First; That if Christ be a substantial mediator, truly spiritual, his gospel then, which he and his apostles hath declared, is not a bare outward relation, history, or carnal letter, but a spiritual and substantial truth and mystery, con- itaining the whole mind, will, and law of God, for us and all saints to believe and practise throughout all ages. 304 PUBLIC DOCUMENTS. Secondly ; It must needs be as durable as the Mediator is, for the law of Christ's priesthood is as durable as the priest- hood itself, the law depending upon the priesthood ; for the change of the priesthood and law goes together, and so the priesthood of old being changed, the law then, and not till then, was changed also (Heb. vii. 18). So when Christ's priesthood is changed, then the law of that priesthood, and not till then, shall be changed also. Thirdly ; It must also be granted, that the scriptures ■which do declare this great mystery of Jesus Christ and his gospel, be the holy scriptures, and the infallible word of God ; for it could never have entered into the heart of man to have known or manifested those hidden mysteries, had not God himself by his own word revealed them from heaven. Now the scriptures are God's word, declaring his mind, making known his counsel, being able to make the people of God wise unto salvation through faith which is in Christ Jesus, being given by inspiration of God, and are profitable for doc- trine, for reproof, for correction, for instruction in righteous- ness, that the man of God may be perfect, throughly furnished unto all good xoorlts (2 Tim. iii. 15, 16), and therefore not to be slighted and undervalued as a dead letter, a bare history, a carnal empty story. Therefore, dearly beloved brethren, we beg and entreat you, and every one that loves his soul, to fear and tremble at the thoughts of slighting and despisino- Christ and his Gospel, or any one of his laws, or holy com- mandments revealed in his word ; for know that God will set his Son upon the holy hill of Sion (Psa. ii, 8), and will call all his enemies that will not have him to reign over them, and slay them before him. He is to be received to rule over us as king, as well as to be an oblation for sin : as he is a priest and sacrifice, so also a prophet and. a king, to teach and govern his people, being the author of eternal salvation to all that obey him. Therefore, that man that departeth from the HEAUT BLEEDINGS. 305 way of subjection to Christ in his holy commandments and ordinances, refuseth Christ to be his Lord and King, and- judges himself unworthy of eternal life; wherefore we in tender compassion to your souls and zeal for the glory of God, do beseech and exhort you that you still keep the holy commandments, as they were delivered unto you, that you do show the same diligence to the end (for he that endureth to the end shall be saved), that ye stand fast, and earnestly con- tend for the faith once delivered to the saints, that no man take your crown from you, and that you take heed that you be not led aside with the workers of iniquity. Oh! let none of us dally with the ways of God, lest we be given up to the error of the wicked, even to those horrible delusions before mentioned, for God is a just and holy God. Oh ! that God would give his people this wisdom in all nations to keep his holy commandments, for holiness becomes his house for ever. Oh ! that God's severity might prevail with all that profess his name, to search their own hearts, lest, not receiving the truth in the love thereof, they be given up to strong delusions to believe a lie : lest they making sin their work and pleasure, God make condemnation to be their wages, and disannulling their league with hell and death, he pull them down from the top of their vanity, whither they have above the heights of the clouds exalted themselves, and laugh at their destruction, and mock when their fear comes. Ob. But many may be ready to object, that those who havfr fiillen into such desperate abominations were sometimes members of our congregations, and from thence are apt to contemn our profession, and question whether our way be of God or no, saying. You see what your judgment leads to. Sol. In answer to this we say : — 1. That it is a great mistake to judge that those persons were all of our societies, for this we .can clearly evince, that many, if not most of them, were never members with us, X 306 PUBLIC DOCUMENTS. 2. Suppose they had been all of us (which yet is not so), yet we say that none may thence reasonably condemn our profession, nor ourselves scruple it, as not of God ; which we doubt not but they will confess, if they consider: 1. That from the undeniable truths of God, and from the churches gathered immediately by the holy apostles them- selves (which by all are granted to be the purest), many pro- fessors have gone astray, and fallen into great condemnation. Hymeneus and Alexander made shipwreck of faith and a good conscience (1 Tim. i. 19), affii'ming (as many of these in our days do) that the resurrection was past already, destroy- ing the faith of some (2 Tim. ii. 18) ; several in Corinth deny- ing any resurrection at all (1 Cor. xv. 12), others falling into very great abominations. Jude tells us, verse 4, That there were certain men crept in unawares, before of old ordained to this condemnation, ungodly men, turning the grace of God into lasciviousness, and denying the only Lord God, and our Lord Jesus Christ. To add one instance more for all, John saith: Little children it is the last time, and as you have heard that antichrist shall come, even now are there many antichrists, whereby we know that it is the last time; they went out from us, but they were not of us. 1 John ii. 18, 19. 2. The Spirit of God, foreseeing such things should be, that we might not be stumbled when they come to pass, hath expressly foretold them. As to the elders of Ephesus (Acts XX. 28, 29, 30), saith Paul by the Spirit, Take heed to feed the church of God which lie liath purchased with his own blood ; for L know this, that after my departing shall grievous wolves enter in among you, not sparing the Jloch : also of your own selves shall men arise speaking perverse things to draw away disciples after them. So also by the apostle Peter (2 Pet. ii. 1, 2, &c.); there shall be, saith he, false teachers among you, who primly shall bring in damnable heresies, denying the Lord that bought them, and bring upon themselves sicift destruction. HEART BLEEDINGS. 307 And muny shall follow their pernicious or lascivious ways, by reason of whom the way of truth shall be evil spoken of Jude excites the saints to remember the words of the apostles of our Lord Jesus, how they foretold there should be mockers in the last time, who should walk after their own ungodly- lusts, separating themselves, sensual, having not the Spirit (verses 17, 18, 19.) And from whom shall they separate, but from the true churches of Jesus Christ, professing the faith of Christ, and being baptized in his name (the scripture no- where approving any other churches that we read of). Paul also tells Timothy, The time would come (and surely those prophecies are now fulfilled) when tliey would not endure sound doctrine, hut after their own lusts heap to themselves teachers, having itching ears, that should turn away their ears from the truth, giving heed unto fables. 3. God in his wisdom permits these things, that those which are approved may be made manifest, and those that seem to be what they are not may be discovered ; for hypo- crites have and will be creeping into the church (and that no marvel, for Satan himself is transformed into an angel of light); but because they receive not the truth in the love thereof, God sends them strong delusions that they should believe a lie, that they all may be damned who believe not the truth, but have pleasure in unrighteousness. 2 Thess. ii. 10, 1 1, 12, &c. ; 1 John ii. 18, 19. 4. We cannot wonder that those who draw near to God in the visible profession of his name, being destitute of the power of godliness, do thus fall away. For God will be sanctified in them that draw nigh to him, either in making them conform- able to his wiU, to the praise of his grace, or else in discover- ing their falsehood, hypocrisy, and madness, making them dreadful examples of his wonderful severity,' to the glory of his justice. Nadab and Abihu, for ofiering strange fire, which the Lord commanded not, were destroyed by fire from X 2 308 PUBLIC DOCUMEffl'S. heaven, (Lev. x. 1, 2, 3.) The Lord himself proclaims from heaven that his ways are righteous, and the just shall walk in them, but transgressors shall fall therein (Hos. xiy. ult). The narrow path of the saints' righteous walk suits not with the licentious principles and interests of carnal men, and though sinners may be in Sion for a time, yet fear surprises them, and by reason of the purity and brightness of the ways of God, they cannot abide therein, but cast Christ's yoke from their necks, because it will not be subservient to their own lusts. A remarkable example of God's severity against those that sometimes professed the truth, whose hearts were not right before God, we may see in Judas, and in Ananias and Sapphira, who for lying against the Holy. Ghost were sud- denly destroyed, to the great fear of all the church of Christ. As in nature the corruption of the best things is tlie greatest corruption, so the greater profession men make of the truth, when once they be corrupted, they fall into the grossest abominations. The truth is, this is no ground to suspect our profession, because some fall from it, for who is it that sins the unpardonable sin, but one that professed the truth of the gospel (1 John v. 16). Who are those that are twice dead, plucked up by the roots, except those that by profession were formerly alive in the truth? Fifthly, and lastly, We do acknowledge, though some eminent professors of the same truth with us have fallen foully (which hath been the occasion of much grief to us"), yet it hath been hitherto and we hope ever shall be our care (as they have been by the righteous judgment of God discovered), according to our duty, to put them from amongst us, endea- vouring to preserve ourselves from all iniquity, and not to have fellowship with the unprofitable works of darkness, but rather to reprove them. We conclude this, sayincr of them that are gone from us ai\d fallen into such notorious wicked- ness, as John saith. They went out from us hecause they were HEART BLEEDINGS. 309 not of US ; for if they had been of us, no douht they would have continued with us; but they went out from us, that they might be made manifest not to be of us. I£.any shall judge what we have here declared doth savour of uncharitableness, rigidness, censoriousness, aud bitterness of spirit to them that dissent from us, we desire all such seriously to take notice that true love and charity is not the soothing of any in their sins, the healing of wounds slightly, the crying peace, peace, when sudden destruction is at hand ; it is not the daubing with untempered mortar, but it is a true love to the truth, and to all for the truth's sake, consisting in plainness and simplicity, engaging us to endeavour the re- storing of them that are fallen, to pull them as brands out of the fire, to contend for the faith once delivered to the saints, to note such persons that walk disorderly, to endea- vour the preserving of them that are found in the faith. While some men cry out against us for uncharitableness, in crying down sin and sinful practices, oh how uncharitable in truth are they that can sutler God to be dishonoured, his Son to be vilified, his truth trampled under foot, his or- dinances slighted, and their own and thousands of poor souls in dano-er of being utterly seduced to their own destruction, and yet have not a heart to relent for such practices, nor a tongue to plead against them, whereby others might be fore- warned of their swift approaching danger ; our consciences bear witness that the honour of God, the love of his truth, zeal for his name, and if possible, the saving of souls from death, hath been the prevailing argument with us, thus to express ourselves; beseeching the God and Father of our Lord Jesus, that by the same power which raised him from the dead, he would inake this instrumental to confirm those who yet abide in the truth, to restore all the simple in heart, who are ready to turn aside from the voice of the true Shepherd and to follow strangers, and the cunning slights 310 PUBLIC DOCUMENTS. and devices of the destroyer, that walks up and down as a roarino- lion seeking whom he may devour, who hath cast down many womided, and slain many strong men ; and that it may also to all men more fully discover the desperate folly and madness of those who triumph in their proud imagina- tions against the truth and sceptre of the Lord Jesus, that all may clearly see their house is the way to hell, going down to the chambers of death, lest they, poor souls, through feigned speeches, being enticed to yield, and forced through the flattering of their lips, should go after them straightway. As an ox goeth to the slaugliier, or as a fool to tlie correction of the stocks, till a dart strike through their liver, Juisting as birds to the snare, not knowing that it is for their life ; and we by uncharitable silence should become guilty of their blood. Now, brethren, we commend you to God, and to the word of his grace, ivhicJi is able to build you up, and to give you an inheritance among all them which are sanctified, praying that you may stand upon your watch, clothed with the whole armour of God, and that you may be kept blameless, living by faith, until the coming of our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ, not casting away your confidence which hath great recompence of reward ; For yet a little while, and he that shall come will come, and will not tarry. The grace of our Lord JesTis Christ be with you all. Amen. Subscribed in the name, and by the appointment of the before-mentioned churches of Christ. John Spilsbery. Tho. Waters. "William Kiffin. ' Hen. Forty. Solomon Saifery. Tho. Young. Hugh GosneL John Watson. William Coneett. Thomas Patience. Edw. Drapes. John Pearson. John Vernon. Ralph Prentice. Tho. Vaus. Joseph Sanson.' FINIS. ' [Several of these names do not appear affixed to the Confession, edits. 1644, 1646.] MR. THOMAS PATIENT TO THE LORD LIEU- TENANT OF IRELAND.* My Lord, From that little acquaintance I had with your Excellency be- fore you went out of Ireland,* and that suitableness that I found in that letter of your experiences, which I was made partaker of, compared with my observation of the goings of God with you for many years, in this great work that God hath made use of you in, it hath, indeed, very thoroughly confirmed my heart in charity and love towards you, as one elect and pre- cious in the sight of God, and one whom God hath honoured with higher dignity and honours than that of this world, which is but as the fading flower of the grass. For the greatest honour that a poor soul can be lifted up to is, first, that precious union with God in Christ, to be one with him in his natures, and as house and inhabitant, and as a vine and branches, as a head and members, as husband and wife, as a ' [From Milton's State Papers, p. hia warlike aohievements, Cromwell 6. Cromwell was appointed Com- was in the habit of maintaining a mander of the Parliament's forces in close fellowship with the Lord's Ireland, in March, 1649, but did not people, and of exhibiting deep inte- arriye in Dublin tUl the 15th Aug. rest in the progress of Christ's king- Kilkenny fell into his hands on the dom. See Carlyle's CromweU, L 424, 28th March, 1650, when Mr. Patient, 449, 512. Whitelocke, p. 429.] who had accompanied the army to ^ [It was on the 22nd of March Ireland, and was attached to the that the letters of Parliament reached head quarters of Major General CromweU, recalling him to England Ireton, must have commenced his to take the command of the army evangelical labours. In the following in Scotland. Although he soon after year, Mr. Patient is found preaching made preparations for his departure, in Waterford, whence he appears to he does not appear to have left have removed to Dublin. It is Ireland till the end of May. Car- pleasant to find that in the midst of lyle's Cromwell, L 515, 519.] 312 PUBLIC DOCUMENTS. father and children, as a king and subjects ; nay, to be one with them in their eternal inheritance, and in all their glory. And in the next to this, it is great honour to be made use of in the hand of God, to do him special service for church and commonwealth, to have a S23irit like unto Christ, which is a public spirit. He came not to be served, but to serve, and to lay down his life a ransom for many. Oh ! therefore, my beloved in the Lord, still let this be the joy of your heart, in all your difficulties and great undertakings, that you are in such a work and service, which I know God hath made you sensible of, hath tended much to the preservation and peace of his church, and the free passage of the gospel; and I hope, at the last, Avill appear to be for the public good of the com- monwealth. My constant prayers are at the throne of grace for you, that you may be kept upright with God, and in nothing left to sin and dishonour God; his name being so much concerned in it. Therefore, as God hath formerly given you the expe- rience of the benefit of a humble walking with God, I beseech you in the bowels of Christ, still keep a close watch over your own heart, and labour to walk under the sense of that body of death and your daily infirmities, and to see a need of godly repentance daily, and humiliation, and fresh strength from Christ by faith, by which you may be kept and preserved in a fresh, sweet, and comfortable communion with God • for his presence will be all your happiness. Be sure to prize God's holy word, and all the rest of God's holy ordinances, and in so much as may be, neglect not to practise them, that you by your constant godly example may provoke others to holiness and to the fear of the Lord. And remember that the apostle bids, " Exhort one another daily, lest any he hardened, through the deceitfulness of sin.'" Though you have ancient acquaintance with God and with your own heart, yet, say as David saith ; Lord, leave me not LETTER FROM MR. THOJIAS PATIENT. 313 when I am old and grey headed. Eest not in grace received, nor too much on former experiences, so as to neglect your future growth and progress in the ways of God. Apply that promise in Job xvii. where God saith ; The righteous shall grow stronger and stronger, and he that liath clean hands shall hold on Ills way. And know, it must be a special power of God that must keep you up to the will of God, to his honour an 1 your comfort. And this, in the simplicity of my very heart, I desire may be in my own heart, and yours, and all that love God in sincerity and truth. And now, beloved and honoured sir, I cannot forbear but to relate some of God's goodness here to us. When you went away, we were fearfully visited under the hand of God, and many took away. Truly God hath kept the heart of my lord deputy" close to himself, and several others of his poor servants- here, humbly waiting upon him to know his mind. And God, through mercy, hath much mitigated his hand on our garrison ; and though we have here many difficulties, yet in some measure keeps our poor souls in a constant waiting, begging frame. I am, at the present, and have been at the head quarters, ever since a little before my Lady Ireton came over. I do by good experience find, so far as I can discern, the power of God's grace in her soul, a woman acquainted with temptations and breathing after Christ. And Colonel Henry Cromwell, your son, to my great rejoicing, it hath pleased God, I am persuaded, to begin a work of grace in his soul. I have had great encouragement that the word of God takes great efifect upon him. He hath had inward temptations in his soul, and many words of grace made very precious and comfortable to his soul ; and I watch him, and he is much crying to God in • [Ireton, mads lord deputy hj Cromwell, io anticipation of his own return to England,] 314 PUBLIC DOCUMENTS. secret, and very forward to propound doubts and cases of concience, betwixt him and I. And your grand-child hath been very weak, but is recovered and pretty well. I think I shall be at Dublin with my lady this summer. I desire the blessing of Heaven to be with you, begging your earnest prayers to God. I desire to be remembered to Monsieur Durate, Master Ky., and all the rest of our friends, as though named. Thus committing you to God, and the word of his grace, in the fellowship of the Spirit, and in the faith of Christ, yours, And remain your humble servant, Thos. Patient. From Kilkenny, 15th of April, 1650. To his Excellency the Lord Lieutenant of Ireland, Chief General of the Parliament'' s forces in Scotland, these. COLONEL HARRISON TO THE LORD GENERAL CROMWELL.^ Mt dear Lord, To spare you trouble, I forbear to give you my excuse for not waiting on you to Ware. I know you love me, therefore are not apt to except, though in this particular I had not failed, but that orders from the council superseded me. Considering under how many and great burdens you labour, I am afraid to say any more, that I may not add to them, but love and duty make me presume. The business you go upon is weighty as ever yet you undertook. The issue plainly and deeply concerns the life or death of the Lord's people, his own name, and his Son's. Nevertheless, may you rejoice in God (whose affair it is), v.'ho having heretofore given you numberless signal testi- monies to other parts of the work, will in mercy prosper this, ' [In the papers of the time, Colonel, mand of the army, although at a afterwards Major General Harrison, conference, in which Cromwell and is frequently referred to as the "head Harrison took part, it was strongly of the anabaptists." Thurloe, i. p. urged upon him. On the 26th June, 396. He was at this time on very Cromwell was named General and intimate terms mth Cromwell, had Commander in Chief of the parUa- taken part in the trial and execution mentary forces, and on the 29th of Charles I., and subsequently as- "went out of London towards the sisted the detachment of soldiers, by the north." At a later period of the whose means Cromwell dissolved the war, Harrison took a command in Eump parliament. Charles Stuart Scotland. On the Restoration he was landed in Scotland in the middle of executed as a regicide. Whitelocke's June, 1650, anticipating which, the Mem., pp. ii5, Ail, 529. Carlyle, ii, parliament resolved to invade that 135.] country. Fairfax refused the com- 316 PUBLIC DOCUMENTS. that he may perfect what he hath begun ; ° and to omit other arguments, that in Deut. xxxii. 27, hath much force on my heart, especially the last words. And the Lord hath not done all this.^ I believe, if the pi-esent . enemy should prevail, he would as certainly reproach God, and all that hitherto has been done as aforesaid, even as I now write ; but the jealousy of the Lord of hosts, for his great name, will not admit it. My Lord, be careful for nothing, but pray with thanksgiving (to wit, in faith), Phil. iv. 6, 7. I doubt not your success ; but I think faith and prayer must be the chief engines ; as here- tofore the ancient worthies, through faith, subdued kingdoms, out of weakness were made strong, waxed valiant in fight, and turned to flight the armies of the aliens. Oh ! that a spirit of faith and supplication may be poured forth on you and your army. There is more to be had in this poor simple way, than even most saints expect. My Lord, let waiting upon Jehovah be the greatest and most considerable business you have every day; reckon it so, more than to eat, sleep, or counsel together. Run aside sometimes from your company, and get a word with the Lord. Why should you not have three or four precious souls always standing at your elbow, with whom you might ' [Cromwell fully Bympathized in dim earth ; this man is one of few. these views. He spoke to Ludlow He is projected with » terrible force on this occasion of the good that out of the eternities, and in the might he done by a good and brave times and their arenas there is man ; of the great providences of nothing that can mthstaud him." God now abroad on the earth; in par- Carlyle's Cromwell, ii. 7. The secret ticular, " talked for almost an hour of Cromwell's strength is clearly in- upon the 110th Psalm." Carlyle re- dicated in the letter before us.] marks: "In such spirit goes Oliver ' [Lest their adversaries shovld Cromwell to the wars. 'A God-iu- ieJiave themselves stran^;ely: and lest toxieated man,' as Kovalis elsewhere they should say. Our hand is high ; phrases it. Bathed in the eternal imd the Lord hatk not done all this.'] splendours, — it is so he walks our COI,ONEL HAREISON TO CROJnVELL. 317 now and theu turn into a comer ? I have found refreshment and mercy in such a way. Ah! the Lord of compassion own, pity your burdens, care for you, stand by and refresh your heart each moment. I would I could in any kind do you good. My heart is with you, and my poor prayers to my God for you. The Almighty Father carry you in his very bosom, and deliver you (if it be his will) from touching a very hair of any for whom Jesus hath bled. I expect a very gracious return in this particular. But I am sorry to be thijs tedious. Pardon me. Here is little news ; only Charles Vane returned from Portugal, who left our fleet indifierently well, and that they had seized nine of the Portugal ships.' The Father of mercies visit and keep your soul close to him continually, protect, preserve, and prosper you, is the prayer of, my lord. Your Excellency's loving servant, whilst I breathe, T. Haekison. Whitelmll, 3rd July, 1650. For his ExceUency the Lord General Cromwell, humbly present these. ' [July 3, 1650. "Letters from liament's generals stopped all tlie En- tlie fleet before Lisbon, that tlie glisb ships, and their lading of paa- Brazil fleet consisting of nine En- sengers and soldiers." These ships glish ships, and as many Portugals were employed for Charles Stuart. and French, coming forth, the Par- Whitelocke, p. 447.] MR. PETER CHAMBERLEN' TO THE LORD GENERAL CROMWELL. Mt Lord, Were there the same integrity with us at home as with you abroad, surely the Lord would bless us, but a secret envy divides us into jealousies, and nothing but a mutual guilt keeps us together. Your counsels, at this distance, are soon forgotten ; every man seeks his own ; and no wonder, for what good without faith? and how can men believe who receive honour one of another, and seek not (through obe- dience) the honour of God that coraeth from above ? (John v. 44.) What wiU the end of these things be ? ships taken, trade " pir., or Dr. Peter Chamberlain ■was an active baptist minister, and appears to have been pastor of a church in London. He had a con- troversy on baptism with Dr. Gouge and Mr. Bakewell. The dispute with Mr. Balcewell was published, under the title of a "Sea of Absurdities concerning sprinkling calmly driven back" (Lond. 4to. 1650). He also discussed in 1652 with Mr. Crawford, the ministerial orders of the presby- terians, and the right of private men, tradesmen, to preach without ordina- tion. In 1654 his name appears with others to a " Declaration " concerning the kingly interest of Christ. As Cromwell rose in power and influence. Chamberlain withmany others became increasingly opposed to him. Their hopes of a commonwealth on a theo- cratic basis, were thereby overthrown. At the restoi-ation, Chamberlain ap- pears to have submitted gladly to the royal authority. Shortly after he was appointed one of the physicians to the king. A letter dated Sept. ] st, 1 677, to a baptist church in New England, thus begins, "Peter Chamberlain, senior, doctor of both universities, and first and eldest physician in or- dinary to his majesty's person accord- ing to the world, but, according to grace, a servant of the word of God." He was stiU living in September, 1679. Backus's Hist.'^ of New England, i. 476, 486. Ivimey, ii. 464. See also the Hexham Church Records.] MR. CHAJIBEELEN TO CROMWELL. 319 decayed, taxes increased, soldiers unpaid, hated abroad, not loved at home, trusting of enemies, distrusting of friends ; it will shortly be a bad choice if extremities afford you other counsels, but either to tax where it is not to be had, or not to pay the soldier the price of his blood. Might it not be accepted now, if one poor despised man could save the city? (Eccles. ix. 15.) Oh ! my lord, there are yet terrible things decreed against this nation, if we turn not unto Him by unfeigned repentance, and a more entire obedience. Truly, my lord, the helps which I (unworthy I) have offered will rise up in judgment. This opportunity I have now taken to see whether the many suggestions against me have not, at least, blotted me out of your Excellency's favour, and to find you at so much leisure in absence to read these few lines, whom I despair ever to speak withal here by reason of the multitude of visits and intrusions that will and did oppress you. This messenger, who hath once had the sweet influence of an attendance nigh your lordship, hopes to be reinstated again into the like favours. I am still, my Lord, Your Excellency's most humble and most faithful servant, Petek Chambeelen.I lUh Dec. 1650. \ For his Excellency, the Lord General Cromwell. LETTER FROM THE PEOPLE OF BEDFORD- SHIRE TO THE LORD GENERAL CROMWELL, AND THE COUNCIL OF THE ARMY.' May it please your Lordship, and the rest of the council of the army : We (we trust), servants of Jesus Christ, inhabitants in the county of Bedford, having fresh upon our hearts the sad oppressions we have (a long while) groaned under from the late parliaments, and now eyeing and owning (through grace) the good hand of God in this great turn of providence, being persuaded that it is from the Lord that you should be instru- ments in his hand at such a time as this, for the electing of such persons, who may go in and out before his people in righteousness, and govern these nations in judgment, we having sought the Lord for you, and hoping that God will still do great things by you, understanding that it is in your ? [The Long Parliament was vio- on the 4th July. Its husiness, says lently dissolved by Cromwell on the Carlyle, was "no less than introducing 20th April, and he proceeded to con- of the Christian religion into real duct the affairs of government with practice in the social affairs of this the assistance of a council formed of nation .... We have conquered the the officers of the army. The dis- enemies of Christ, let us now in real solution was popular in the country, practical earnest set about doing the ind addresses of adhesion to the commandments of Christ, now that new executive came in from all there is free room for us ! " The /'quarters. Cromwell and his council names of Gifford and Bunyan signed I resolved on the formation of a New to this address, will be recognized as j Parliament, selected from the most those of the pastors of the church at ,' eminent men in each county. The Bedford. Other parties were united summonses were issued on the 8th of with them in this act. Whitelocke, June, and the Little Parliament met pp. 629, 535. Carlyle, ii. 182, 220.] LETTER FROM BEDFORDSHIRE. 321 hearts, through the Lord's assistance, to establish an authority consisting of men able, loving truth, fearing God, and hating covetousnesa ; and we having had some experience of men virith us, we have judged it our duty to God, to you, and to the rest of his people, humbly to present two men, viz. : Nathaniel Taylor, and John Croke, now justices of peace in our county, whom we judge, in the Lord, qualified to manage a trust in the ensuing government. All which we humbly refer to your serious considerations, and subscribe our names, this 13th day of May, 1653. John Eston, John Grewe, John Gilford, Jo. Rush, Tho. Varrse, Michael Cooke, John Ramsay, Robert English, John Edridge, George Gee, Ambrose Gregory, William Page, Clement Berridge, John Bimyan, William Baker, jun. Anth. Harrington, Richard Spensley, Edward Covinson, John Hogg, John Jefferd, John Ivory, Daniell Groome, Luke Parratt, Thomas Knott, Isaac Freeman, William Dell, William Wheeler, John Gibbs, John Donne, Tho. Gibbs, Edward White, John Browne, John White, Charles Peirse, Thomas Cooke, Thomas Honnor. These to the Lord General Cromwell, and the rest of the council of the army, present. 322 PUBI-IC DOCUMENTS. LETTER FROM MR. KIFFEN AND OTHERS/ TO THE PEOPLE OF IRELAND. London, the 20th of the 11 mo. [1653—4]. Deae Brethren, As there is notliiug more occasions rejoicing in us than to hear of your increase in the knowledge and love of God, expressed by an humble and patient waiting for the kingdom of our Lord Jesus, so is there nothing more grievous to us than to hear any thing done by you, either in word or action, which may occasion any blemish upon the glorious profession of Christ, owned by you in your visible profession of his name in the world. The law of that great relation we stand in to you, as brethren in the faith once given to the saints, engageth us as our duty to write these few lines unto you, ^ * [From Milton's State Papers, p. 169. December 16th, 1653, "The late Parliament having resigned their powers into the Lord General's hands, the Lord General called a council of of&cers, and advised with them, and with other persons of interest in the nation, how this great burthen of governing .England, Scotland, and Ireland with the armies therein, and the navy at sea, should be borne, and by whom. They, after seeking God and advising in this matter, resolved. That a covmcil of godly, able and discreet persons should be named, consisting of twenty-one ; and that the Lord General (Cromwell) should be chosen Lord Protector of the three nations," Whitelocke, p. 552. "Upon the first hearing of this many of the anabaptists here (Ireland) were much troubled, principally because of the title ' Lord Protector,' as they think this applicable to God alone." Thur- loe's State Papers, ii. 149.] = [To the baptists of Ireland. Under date of March 8th, 1653-4, Henry Cromwell writes to Thurloe, "The army generally, both here about the head quarters (Dublin) as also those in the other parts of the nation, are abundantly satisfied and well pleased with the present government in Eng- land ; unless it be some few incon- siderable persons of the anabaptist judgment, who are also quiet, though not very weU contented. But I believe they wUl receive much satis- faction from a letter very lately come to their hands from Mr. Kifiin and SpUsbury, in which they have dealt very liomely and plainly with those of that judgment here." State Papers, ii. 149.] LETTER FEOM MR. KIFFIN. 323 principally occasioned -from those general rumours which are in the mouths of many, that since this late alteration of government in these three nations, there is raised up in many amongst you a spirit of great dissatisfaction and opposition against this present authority, insomuch we hear it is your resolution to make a public protest against it, to show your dislike thereof; the report of which is indeed no small occa- sion of trouble to us, fearing lest thereby the glorious name of Christ will suffer, the hands and hearts of those who we have cause to believe are strongly engaged to lay the found- ation of justice and righteousness in the three nations will be discouraged, and the common enemy rejoice. We trust, therefore, that you will better consider of this matter, and consult with that blessed rule of truth which you profess to be your guide; and then we question not but you will thereby see that your resolutions are not of God. For that expresseth no other thing, to Christians, but exhortations to be subject to all civil powers, they being of God, and to pray for aU that are in authority, that under them we may live a godly and quiet life in all godliness and honesty. And, truly, it is more unlovely for us to be found contending against powers than any others, because we profess ourselves to be dead with Christ, being buried with him in baptism, and to be raised with him to this end, that we may walk in newness of life, and, as strangers and pilgrims, declaring we seek another city, even that whose builder and maker is God. Therefore the apostle concludes this, as that which should be in every Christian spirit, in 2 Cor. x. 3, that though we are in the flesh, we do not war after the flesh ; a Christian's war- fare being another thing, to another end. It is possible the occasion of taking these resoluions may arise from some misunderstanding of the state of things here ; for truly we cannot think, if you had been here and taken an observation of the great disesteem that all power began to be T 2 324 ruin.ic docuiments. in, by reason of the ill management of it in the hands of those where it was ; which ,in an ordinary way ; hadit been so continued, would soon have brought in a, spirit of great wickedness through the nation, e\ery man and woman, yea, children, taking upon them to judge and contemn that great ordinance which God hath set in the world to bound and restrain that spirit of wickedness which was like to be amongst the sons of men. And this we are clearly satisfied in, [that] the principles held forth by those meeting in Blackfriars,® under pretence of the fifth monarchy, or setting up the kingdom of Christ, to which many of those lately in power adhered, had it been prosecuted, would have brought as great dishonour to the name of God, and shame and contempt to the whole nation, as we think could have been imagined. For, under these two heads, the substance of all their preach- ing consists: 1st. That it was the duty of the magistrate to own their power to be received immediately from Jesus Christ. From this consequence would have unavoidably followed, that they were only accountable to Christ for their actions, and not to men. And would not this have been the same with the late king, who being persuaded by his prelates that he received his power immediately from God, was not accountable to the people's representatives? But the second thing held forth vk^ith great zeal by those friends was, that the great rule by which they were to act in their proceedings ' [The parties referred to were a thoughts of this present change, were Mr. Fealie, Mr. Vavasor Powell, Mr. yesterday taken into custody." They Simpson, and others. The change of were both examined by the council government was bitterly inveighed and committed to the custody of the against by them at their meeting Serjeant at ai-ms. "Major General house in Blackfriars. Feake and Harrison being treated with, to know Simpson were independents, Powell if he could own and act under, this was a baptist. An intercepted letter, present power, and declaring that he dated December 22nd, 1653, states could not, had his commission taken that " Mr. Powell and Mr. Feake, from him." Thurloe, i. 641.] having spoken somewhat largely their LETTER FEOM MB. KIFFIN. 325 towards the making of war or peace with the nations, should arise from a spirit stirred up, as they say, by God, to throw down potentates and powers, rather than those prudential rules of justice and righteousness, in the doing to all men as they would men should do to them. We write not these things to cast a blemish upon them, but to let you see to what a condition in an ordinary way we were running into, that you may be satisfied of what great necessity there was to interpose for the prevention of those unavoidable dangers which were even at the door, ready to seize upon us ; and we have ground to be confident, that for the prevention of the dishonour that was like to fall upon the profession of the gospel, if things had gone on in that way they were going, my lord protector hath taken upon him that great burden to govern these three] nations ; from whom we may expect protection and shelter from all injuries, and worship the Lord in that way our consciences are convinced of is most agree- able to the will of God, a mercy not usually enjoyed by saints in any age before, and, we have cause to fear, not prized by saints. We do therefore beseech you, for the Lord's sake and for the truth's sake, that it be not evil spoken of men, seriously weigh these things ; for surely if the Lord gives us hearts, we have a large advantage put into our hands to give a public testimony in the face of the world, that our principles are not such as they have been generally judged by most men to be ; which is, that we deny authority, and would pull down all magistracy. And if any trouble should arise, either with you or us, in the nations, which might proceed to the shedding of blood, would not it all be imputed and charged upon the baptized churches ? and what grief and sorrow would be administered to us, your brethren, to hear the name of God blasphemed by ungodly men, through your means. This we can say, that we have not had any occasion of sorrow in this matter from any of the churches in 326 PUBLIC DocmrENTS. this nation, with whom we have communion ; they, with one heart desiring to bless God for their liberty, and with all willingness to be subject to the present authority. And we trust to hear the same of you/ having lately received an epistle written to us by all the churches amongst you, press- ing us to a strict walking with God, and warning of us to take heed of formality, the love of this world ; that we slight not our mercy in the present liberties we enjoy. Which we thankfully receive from you, as knowing that such counsel we have need of.' And we daily pray, that the same spirit be with power upon all our hearts, that we may more and more show forth the virtues of Christ in all good conversation and godliness, which is and shall be the truest prayers of, Your unfeigned brethren in the Lord, Will. Kiffin, John Spilsbcey, Joseph Fansom. ' ["As to your grand affaire in that Bhould a stranger arrive here Ireland, especially as to the Ana- now, he would never believe there baptist party, I am confident they had been any difference, unless upon are much misconceived in England. the sabbath a congregation may be Upon the change of affairs here was discerned, of which Mr. Patient is discontent enough ; but very little pastor : from whose church those of animosity. For certa!inly never yet profitable employment daUy (though any faction, so well fortified by aU not per saMwm, yetSby degrees), do the offices, military and civil, almost decline." Intercepted Letter in in the whole nation, did quit their Thurloe, ii. 213.] interest with more silence. Some " [This correspondence took place two or three were at the very first in June, 1653. It may be seen in imprisoned for plots and libels, which Rippon's Register, App. p. 13, also caused such a general compliance, Ivime/s Hist. i. 240.] THE HTBIBLE REPRESENTATION AND VINDICATIONS Of many of the Messengers, Elders, and Brethren, belonging to severaU of the BAPTIZED CHUHCHES IN THIS NA- TION, of and concerning their Opinions and Eesolutiona touching the CIVILE GOVERNMENT of these Nations, and of their Deportment under the same. LONDON, Printed by R : I. 1654 Many of the messengers, elders, and brethren of the bap- tized churches, having from several parts of this nation met together in the city of London, to consider how and which way the affairs of the gospel of Christ, so far as it concerns them, might be - best promoted, and ail divisions and offences contrary thereunto removed or prevented; have also thought it necessary to publish and declare their judgments and con- sciences touching the civil power of the nation, partly to vindicate themselves from some aspersions hereabout unduly and without cause cast upon them ; and partly to rectify all men's misapprehensions of them. It hath been, indeed, as well matter of grief to them as of prejudice to the way of truth professed by them, to hear themselves frequently, and upon all occasions, misreported '' [The occasion of this publication The signatures appended are all of seems to have been the same as that them those of general baptists.] which led to the preceding letter. 328 PUBLIC DOCUMENTS. and misrepresented, so, as if they were no friends to magis- tracy and civil government : Whereas (the Lord knows, who, should they not be upright herein, would be a swift witness against them) they hold themselves obliged by gospel rules, to be subject to the higher powers, to obey magistrates, and to submit themselves to every ordinance of man, for the Lord's sake. And in case the civil powers do, or shall, at any time impose things about matters of religion, which they through conscience to God cannot actually obey, yet they know no other way in this case, but either patiently to suffer, or humbly to entreat favour. Neither do they hold themselves so much concerned to know the duenes§ or undueness of the call of persons to the rule and government of nations, as that their knowledge thereof, or ignorance therein, should either further or hinder their quiet and peaceable submission to them, but that it becomes them always to acknowledge the powers that are in present being to be of God. .And as it is a duty incumbent upon all Christians, to make supplications, prayers, intercessions, and giving of thanks for all that are in authority ; so they do accordingly with all their hearts acknowledge that they are bound to bless the God of heaven for that peace and liberty they do enjoy under the present government, and stiU to pray for those that are in authority, that under them they may live peaceable and quiet lives in all godliness and honesty. And if any particular persons under the same form of pro- fession with them, shall at any time be found to act or speak any thing contrary hereunto (as it is possible there may in these times, as well as in the first times of the gospel, be such found, as despise dominion, and are not afraid to speak evil of dignities), yet they greatly desire all men that hear and know any such thing, not to impute such miscarriages unto their THE HUMBLE REPRESENTATION. 329 way in whicli they walk, or unto the generality of persons engaged therein ; but only to the persons themselves so offend- ing, as being such as either are, or deserve to be dealt withal for such disorderly walking. Nor do they know any ground for the saints, as such, to expect that the rule and government of the world should be put into their hands, until that day in which the Lord Jesus shall visibly descend from heaven in power and great glory, when indeed they verily believe, that according to the scrip- tures, the kingdoms of this world shall become the kingdoms of the X/ord and of his Christ, and that then the kingdom, and dominion, and the greatness of the kingdom under the whole heaven shall be given to the people of the saints of the Most High ; but till then they rather expect it as their portion, patiently to suffer from the world, as the scriptures direct them, and as the saints usually have done, than anywise to attain the rule and government thereof. Nevertheless their opinion is, that though the saints, as such, are not to expect an interest and share in the govern- ment of the world, until the good day aforesaid ; yet in the capacity of honest and faithful men, they ought, when called thereunto, to yield their best assistance in and about the management of the civil government of kingdoms or common- weals. And in as much as our Saviour Christ hath given this as one sign, not long preceding his next coming, saying, This ffospel of the kingdom shall he preached in all the world, for a witness unto all nations, and then shall the end come ; their hope therefore is, that in these latter days, at least for a time, God will, by the hands of such civil powers as shall favour the saints, open a door of greater liberty to the saints, for the spreading of the gospel in the nations of the world, than usually hath been enjoyed in times past; and do verily believe that that measure of liberty this way, which hath of late years 330 PUULIC DOCtJMENTS. been allowed the peojjle of God, hath contributed not a little (God being pleased therewith) towards those marvellous and unwonted successes, which have been given to those who have been instruments to procure the same. Signed by some of the messengers and elders of the bap- tized churches, present at this meeting in London, for themselves and in the behalf of the respective congregations to which they belong. MESSENGERS. Sam. Fisher, WiU. Jefferie, Nat. Roe, Rich. Kiugsuof, James Sicklemore, Math. Caffin, John Wilson, Ben. Morley, John Lupton, Abraham Clough, Tho. Munk, John HartnoU, John Foxwel, John Griffith, Thomas Parrot, WUl. Allen, Tho. Lamb, George Haman, John Parsons, Edm. Blundel, John Templeman, Tho, Astey, Stephen DaguaU, Rob. Thomson Reeve. FINIS. ADDRESS FEOM THE BAPTIZED CBUECHES IN NORTHTOIBERLAOT), &c., TO THE LOED PEOTECTOE.' To his highness the Lord Protector of England, Scotland, and Ireland, with the dominions thereunto belonging. The representation and petition of Christ's servants and your highness' loyal subjects, walking in the profession of faith and baptism in Northumberland, Yorkshire, and Derby- shire. It is none other than the almighty hand of God, in various and wonderful passages of providence, that hath emboldened, and even constrained us, to make these humble addresses to your highness; wherein we do solemnly declare our de- testation of all ungodly attempts of men of corrupt minds, whom our Lord hath stigmatized as despisers of government, presumptuous, self-willed, who are neitlier afraid to speak or plot evil against dignities (2 Pet. ii. 10). But through riches of grace our soul hath not come into their secret (Gen. xlix. &). Yea, so far do our spirits abhor any sinful compliance or correspondence with such atheistical spirits, that we dare not shake hands with indifferents or malcontents ; for we have seen with open face such a marvellous series of pro- vidences'' (accompanied with Jehovah's power) over your 1 [From Milton's State Papers, p. ^ [" The providences and dispensa- IZi. The occasion of this letter is tious of God have been so stupendous." the same as that of the two previous Cromwell's Spcecli to the Little documentB.] Parliament, Carlylc, ii. 251.] 332 PUBLIC DOCUMENTS. highness's actions, that (as souls truly sensible) we must say. The eternal God is thy refuge, and underneath are the ever- lasting arms (Deut. xxxiii. 27). Yea, our enemies them- selves being judges, must perforce confess God hath made good his word (Isa. liv. 17), No weapon tliat is formed against thee shall prosper. Neither can we question the faithful performance of the second part of that promise (to him whose heart employed his lips in that honest, gracious speech) (Isa. liv. 17), And every tongue that shall rise up against thee in judgment, thou shalt condemn ; the considera- tion whereof hath engaged our hearts, as towards England's governors, so especially towards your highness, whom God hath eminently raised (as a wise, valiant, faithful, Joshua) (Judg. V. 9), to protect us in these halcyon days of peace, plenty, and liberty, who, with your renowned worthies and honourable counsellors, have been our instrumental saviours in darkest days of distress and misery (Neh. ix. 2), Lord, wlien thy hand is lifted up, they will not see : but they shall see. Who raised up the righteous man from the east, called him to his foot, gave the nations before him, and made him rule over kings? he gave them as the dust to his sword, and as driven stubble to his bow (Isa. xxvi. 11, and xli. 2). Let such as are infatuated with atheism, and poisoned with the dregs of Arminius, cry up a self-advancing power in creatures, whilst we adore the Prince of the kings of the earth, who giveth the kingdoms of the world to whomsoever he pleaseth (Dan. v. 21). Hence, holy transportations from hearts singly devoted to your highness, do breathe forth the divine raptures of the royal psalmist, God hath spoken once ; twice have I heard this, that power belongeth unto God. He putteth down one and setleth up another (Psa. Ixxii. 1], and Ixxv. 6, 7). Wherefore, cheerfully echoing to the dictates of the same eternal Spirit, we profess our subjection to your highness and most honourable council, as the happy powers ADDRESS FROM NORTHUMBERLAND. 333 ordained of God (Rom. xiii. 1); bappy in your glorious conquests and wonderful victories by land and sea, which hath spread Christ's fame, with England's worthies, through Europe and the world, many of whose nations daily court our favours ; happy in those lovely twins, peace and plenty (the unexpected issue of cruel wars), attending truth in her triumphant robe of liberty ; happy in that excellent instru- ment, the saints' civil Magna Charta,' for the government of this commonwealth, wherein such blessed provision is made for the tender lambs of the Lord Jesus, seconded by the late affectionate fatherly breathings of your highness at the dissolution of the last parliament. These are the mercies many thousands have long prayed for, but never truly enjoyed till your highness's happy government. Eternal praises to the Lord Jehovah, who, through your highness's indefatigable labours, hath given us our lives (and more) for a prey ; to behold a glimpse of that glorious promise in our days (Oba. 21), And saviours shall, come upon mount Zion to judge the mount of Esau, and the kingdom shall be the Lords. Sir, you have our affectionate prayers, that your government may be established in righteousness ; that we may long enjoy a quiet and peace- able life under you, in all godliness and honesty ; that your highness, with your excellent council, may effectually en- deavour (by the rule of God's word) to suppress all pro- faneness, idolatry, atheism, blasphemy, the contempt of scriptures, ordinances, and seasons of God's worship. Our ^ [The Instrument of Government, penalties to a public profession ; and under the provisions of which Crom- that persons of differing judgment, welltooktheProtectorate. Itprovided should be protected in the exercise for the encouragement and main- of their religion and the confession of tenance of "able and painful" teachers, their faith. Popery and prelacy, for the instruction of the people and however, were not to enjoy this confutation of error and heresy; liberty. Whitelocke, p. 557.] that no' person should be forced by 334 PUIiLIC DOCUMENTS. souls cannot but mourn and lament (in the midst of .our enjoyments) over these threatening abominations — injustice, oppression, pride, drunkenness, uncleanness, cursing, and swearing. We humbly conceive these latter impieties, with their concomitants, shall never be suppressed until those filthy cages and nurseries of wickedness (the swarms of ale- houses that abound in darkest corners) be prohibited and moderated. If God shall thoroughly affect your highness's heart with these our just complaints, our confidence wiU be raised upon substantial grounds, to behold these nations, under your protection, to be the Lord's indeed. That which we further crave of your highness is, a gracious acceptance and Christian construction of these our honest addresses, for the vindication of our integrity and affection; no longer desiring protection from you than we shall in all humble subjection demean and approve ourselves. Your highness's faithful and obedient subjects, Thomas Tillam, Messenger." HiCHAED Orde,") John Waede, \'^^^^''- Signed in the name and with approbation of the church of Christ at Hexham, the 11th day of the 12th month, 1654. John Thirl wall, ") John Eeadshaw, /-Deacons. Signed in the name of the church of Christ at Derby and Burton upon Trent, the first day of the first month, 1654. Egbert Holpe, William Tomblinson. In the name of the church of Christ at Wharton, near Bradford, the 12th month, 25th day, 1654. David Lumbet, John Clayton. * [See Hesliam Church Records, to trace any particulars of the other H. K, Soe. edit. I have been unable two churches.] ADDRESS OF THE ANABAPTIST MINISTERS IN LONDON, TO THE LORD PROTECTOR.* May it please toue Highness, As we judge it our duty to appear before the Lord for you, so we conceive it necessarily incumbent on us from the Lord (especially considering the encouragements some of us have received from you, and the engagements of this Icind laid upon us by you) to address ourselves unto you in this sad and unexpected juncture of affairs, wherein our godly jealousies, fears, and inexpressibly sorrowful thoughts of heart, are multiplied and daily increased, with respect to yourself and the whole interest of Christ and his people in the three nations; many of whom have, for many years together, hazarded themselves with yourself in the high places of the field, lost and shed much blood, and made great ' [From Milton's State Papers, p. 142. Late in February and through- out March, 1657, the Parliament was engaged in the discussion of a new instrument of government, of which the offer of the title of king to Crom- well should form a part. On the 31st March the House rose at eleven o'clock, and attended by the whole house the Speaker repaired to 'White- hall, and laid before the Protector the splendid bait. Meanwhile remon- strances had already been made to him by the officers of his army, to which he had sharply replied . On the 3rd April, the day on which the address of the baptist ministers was presented, Cromwell desired of parliament the formation of a conference to confer with him. This was done. Tariou^ conferences were held, and on the 8tli May the Protector finally announced to the House of Commons his inten- tion to retain his present style and! title; " I say I am persuaded to return \ this answer to you. That I cannot \ undertake this government with the title of king. And that is mine I answer to this great' and weighty \ business." 'Whitelocke attributes this decision to the soUcitatious, and even tlenunciations of the officers of the army and commonwealth's men. Whitelocke, p. 646. Carlyle's Crom- well, ii 485, 589.] 336 PL'BI.IC DOCUMENTS. desolations in this and the neighbour nations; and have appeared upon the mount in solemn professions, prayers, appeals, and thanksgivings to the most high God, owning different principles, and professing different ends from the generality of the people of the three nations ; many monu- ments whereof remain upon record, in papers of several sorts emitted from them in a military and civil capacity, upon several occasions. By all which professions, actions, and suc- cesses from the Lord of hosts therein, what amazement, horror, and confusion was brought upon men of carnal and corrupt principles and interests in this and neighbour nations, what refreshings, encouragements, and holy rejoicings have been produced in the hearts of the people of God, is so notorious as not to be forgotten. But (sir), we cannot but spread before your highness our deep resentment of, and heart bleedings for, the fearful apostacy which is endeavoured by some to be fastened upon you, upon plausible pretences, by such who, for the most part, had neither heart nor hand to engage with you, and the good people of the nation, in the day of straits and extremities, by persuading you to re-edify that old structure of government, which God by you and them had signally borne testimony against and destroyed, and assume that office, which was once declared and engaged against by the parliament, March |l7th, 1648, and approved of by the honest party as unneces- , sary, burdensome, and destructive to the safety and liberty of I the people. Sir, we have in the capacities wherein we stand, I with freedom and faithfulness to the good old cause, borne I our testimonies against this retrogradation ; and should with much peace and satisfaction to , our consciences acquiesce therein, but that we are persuaded the honour of God, the interest of his people, the safety of yourself and family, and the peace and tranquillity of the nations, lie so eminently at the stake, that should you be charmed into a compliance. ADDRESS OF ANABAPTISTS. 337 and thereby be talked out of tliat, by your new pretending friends, which you could not be beaten Out of by all your old enemies (to use your highness's expression), we cannot but fear that blasphemy, ruin, and confusion would inevi- tably follow ; the grounds of which fears we humbly submit to your judicious consideration, and are reducible to these four heads : — 1st. The glory of God, whose name and cause will thereby be reproached and made a bye-word, as too, too much [it] is already. 2ndly. The interest of God's people in general, though of different apprehensions, not rationally to be secured under the old form. 3rdly. The grieving of the spirits of many good people, in and out of the army, who generally are wounded at the thoughts of it (as appears by the sober attes- tations of many thousands, which we have seen), who have been accounted the horsemen and chariots of Israel, and to whom, usually, God reveals his mind. 4thly. The hardening the hearts and strengthening the hands of the enemy, who will say — This is that which we looked for (all the successes have been but chances of war), the advancing of persons, not things, was from the first designed. Our day is coming, &c. Your highness cannot but know how easy it were to enlarge, with much demonstration, upon these generals : which we shall forbear, conceiving that the naming of them may be a sufficient remembrance to you, and consequently an effectual preservative against tergiversation, in this hour of temptation. We beseech you, in the bowels ot Jesus Christ, remember what God did for you and us at Marston Moor, Naseby, Pembroke, Preston, Tredah, Dunbar, and Worcester, and upon what gi'ounds, also what boasts we have made of God thereupon, and give- not cause to the enemy to say, that because God is not able to perfect his work, therefore we must return into Egypt. If our persons, lives, liberties, and 338 PUBLIC DOCUMENTS. estates were only in danger, we could hold our peace ; but when all that is dear to God and his people is so near'ly con- cerned, we cannot but plead with the Lord, and also with your highness, hoping you will have regard to us, and the sighs, groans, and tears of many of the faithful in these nations. But if not, we shall not cease waiting upon our God and Father, for the accomplishing his own design in his own way and time ; not doubting but deliverance will arise to his forsaken cause and people, some other way. As Mordecai said in his answer unto Esther, chap, iv., towards the end. The 3rd day of the second month [April], 1657. John RajTiea, late servant to the Lord President Lawrence, Jolin Goodwm, John Griggs, Richard Marimau, H. Jessey, John Clarke, Hauserd Knollys. Henry Jackson, Wm. Warren, John Spilsbery, Edward Harrison, Renatus Edwards, Samuel TuU, Joseph Sausom, Tho. Evans, John Battey, David Branaly, Jonathan Lodingtou, John Gowdin. " [John Goodwin was an indejien- dent ; Jessey, Knollys, Spilsbury, and HaiTison, were all well-known baptist ministers.] ADDRESS OF THE BAPTIZED CHRISTIANS IN DUBLIN' TO THE LORD PROTECTOR. To his Highness the Lord Protector of the Commonwealth of England, Scotland, and Ireland. The humble address of divers of the baptized Christians in Dublin and elsewhere, in the behalf of themselves, and their brethren in Ireland. Mat it please youe Highness, The great things which God hath wrought by his out- stretched and naked arm for us, and all other his people in these nations, in the days wherein we live, ought to effect in each of us an humble sense of his goodness, with a thankful and zealous spirit of love to him and all his, for whose sakes kings have been reproved and wise men turned backward, and their wisdom made foolishness, yea, and the , meek and righteous have been exalted; in the sense of which we desire to rejoice and say. Thou only, O Lord, hast done it. And forasmuch as God hath, by his good providence, made your highness a special instrument herein, and given you not only a faithful heart but much enlarged (beyond many that began in the same work, and have now turned their backs thereon), to go on, and still to own, stand by, and contend for the interest of God's people, though despised by many, « [From Milton's State Papers, p. of baptists, resident in Dublin, Kil- 148. Thit. letter is without date ; kenny and Waterford, and probably but may probably be referred to the otter places. Thos. Patient and year 1657, shortly after the rejection Christopher Blackwood, were the two of the title of King by Cromwell. leading ministers of the denomination The names attached comprise those at that time in Ireland.] Z 2 340 PUBLIC DOCUMENTS. which we have had effectual testimonies and comfortable experiences of many years, and in special manner, in what your highness was pleased lately to manifest ; in the sense of which your constant, faithful, and unwearied pains and labours, our souls are enlarged in the Lord, as knowing it is from him (the hearts of all men being in his hands), that your highness .hath been kept under manifold temptations and provocations (even by some from whom you might have expected better things), still to stand fast, and hath filled you with a spirit of courage and resolution to go on in the work he hath called you to ; for which we bless the name of your and our God, who will be your rock and fortress, yea, your shield and defence, from the rage and subtlety of your and our enemies (though never so great and many) in so good an undertaking. Therefore let your eye be unto him, and in the glorious power of his might be you strong, since his strength hath been your support hitherto, and his v/isdom your guide through many knotty works and untrodden paths. Yea, his right hand hath led you for many years last past ; therefore let not your highness be discouraged, though you meet with Anakim and high walls, and such like difficulties in the way ; they shall be bread for you. Their shield is departed from them, and the Lord is with us. Fear them not, for they shall be but as driven stubble to your bow ; yea, though some whom your highness judgeth faithful shall not go along with but endeavour to hinder the work. Yet, remember, your precious Redeemer endured many con- tradictions of .sinners against himself; how much more [ought] you [to bear with] the infirmities of some of the Lord's people, and herein to follow his steps. We shall only further add that we do assure your hio-h- ness, that whatsoever report you have heard of either The church baptized in Dublin, or any other church in the same faith in Ireland, it is far from our hearts to disown the ADDRESS OF B.VPT1ZED CHRISTIANS. 341 Lord's authority in your highness, or his work in your hand ; but that you have with cordial and endeared af- fections been in our hearts, and the weight of your burden and work hath by the prayers and tears (we can truly say) of the most unsatisfied brother amongst us, been borne be- fore the Lord and the throne of his grace; and we are persuaded shall be so, through the assistance of him who is able, and will, we trust, support you, and make your autho- rity to answer that great end propounded in the gospel ; which is to distribute equal encouragement and countenance to them that are well doers, and terror to tliem that do evil. In which, as also in the prosecuting the many good things undertaken, we shall, through grace, live and die with your highness. Thomas Patient, Ki. Lawrence, James Morley, James Standish, He. JohnBon, Bartholomew Huesey, Edw. Roberts, Peter Row, W. Skinner, Paul Cudmore, Mich. Elliott, Edw. Tomlins, Walt. Bingham, Tho. Trookmorton, Tho. Wilson, John Draper, C!hr. Blackwood, William Waker, Richard Fox, William Bolton, Michael Hoxton, John Ingham, Cha. Diike, Wilkc Hai-udet-, John Dike, John Hunt, Tho. Atwalle, Abr. Wells, Rich. Scott, John Ansloe, Roger Holdenby, Jo. Stulbor, Rob. Ormat, George Cotcher, Edw. Rayment, Paul Dod, Allen Beard, Tho. Williams, Geo. Duffett, Will Stotesbuiy, John Bingham, Will Speed, Thomas Bell, Mord. Abbott, John Knight, Robert Chvrke, Maurice Murphy, John Sharpe, William Moore, Tho. Broadhurst, John Page, Ed. CarA 342 PUULIC DOCUMENTS. John Willis, John Cliurcb, John Reeves, Stephen Hawes, Robert Carr, Hen. Evei'ai'd, Stephen Mories, Francis Thomas, Richard Derks, Richard Keale, Will. Sands, Richard Hunt, Ri. Slingdon, John Tuce, J. Stopford, Will. Hopkms, Rob. Marrey, Maur. Thomas, Am. Andrews, Christo. Dobson, Ja. Browne, Edward Sutton, Phill. Alden, Francis Bishop, Adrian Strong, John Milant, Peter Coventiy, Robert Wells, Christop. Gough, Stephen Vines, Tho. Adams, R. Smith, Will. Hay, William Stokes, Daniel Fossey, Rob. Phillips, Will. Walker, Tho. Davis, Arm. Thomas, Gresham Gourd, Chr. Ormesbye, William Cooper, Tho. Lewine, Samuel Newton, T. Pratt, John Matthew, John Jay, Mar. Lynch, Rio. Hunt, John Maverly, Char. Holcroft, Henry Ormsby, Ben. Woodworth, WiU. Crutchley, Tho. Barnes, John Gryce, Will. Heydon, Georg. Thomlinson, John Baker, Edward OUeye, John German, William Whittinge, John Meech, John Bailey, Charles Walters, John Foster, Robert Greay. THE HUMBLE APOLOGY OP SOME COMMONLY CALLED ANABAPTISTS/ In behalf of themselves and others of the same Judgement with them : With their Protestation against the late wicked and most horrid treasonable Insurrection and Rebellion acted in the City of LONDON. Together -with an Apology formerly presented to the KINOS most ExceUent MAJESTY. Acts 22. V. 1. Men, brethren, and fathers, hear ye my defence [Gr. Apology'\ which, I TtiaJce now unto you. Psal. 35. 11. FaXse witnesses did rise up, they laid to jny charge things that I bnew not. Acts 24. V. 12, 13. They neither found me in the Temple disputing with a man, neither raising up the people, neither in the Synagogues, nor in the City. Neither can they prove the things whereof they tvow accuse me. London, printed by Henry Kills, and are to be sold by Francis Smith, at the sign of the Elephant and Castle without Temple-Bar. 1660. We should be stupid and senseless if we did not deeply resent those black obloquies and reproaches cast upon those of our profession and practice in the point of baptism, by occasion of the late most horrid treason and rebellion in this city of London. We most sadly see and feel that among many it is become ' [The three following pieces owe their presentation to the king may be their origin to the Insurrection of found related in Tracts on Liberty of Tenner, the fifth monarchist, which Conscience, pp. 287, 309, 343. Both was eagerly seized by Charles II. and general and particular baptists united his advisers, to restrain the liberty of in the Apology before us. The in- conscience he had promised before he surrection of Venner took place on was seated on his restored throne. the 7th Jan., 1660-1.] The various events connected with 344 PUDLIC nOCUJlENTS. enough to retukr any 111:111 criiiiiniil U) be called an anabap- tistj or at least a ground sufficient to (|uestion his loyalty and fidelity to the king's majesty. We may not therefore be so negligent of our duty unto God in respect of our profession, or unto ourselves and families, as silently to suffer our names and profession to be buried under such causeless Infamy : neither may we be so much ivanting of our duty to our king, as by such sullen silence to offer his majesty just occasion of being jealous and sus- picious of our loyalty aud obedience, or to leave him without all possible rational security of our humble subjection and fidelity to him. We acknowledge that the histories of Ger- many, relate most dreadful things of the impious opinions and practices of some reputed anabaptists, destructive to all government and human society. Although it is to be ob- served what Gassander, a learned and moderate papist, relates in his epistle to the Duke of Gulick and Cleve ; to this pur- pose : — That there were certain people in Germany bearing the denomination of anabaptists, who resisted and opposed the opinions and practices of those at Munster, and taught the contrary doctrine, whereby (in his opinion) they appeared to be incited by a godly mind, and rendered themselves rather worthy of pity than persecution and perdition. And that in Holland those who have succeeded them, do in doctrine and practice adhere to the same peaceable principles, is publicly known. But the misguided zeal of some (other- wise minded in the point of baptism) hath frequently, though unduly, imputed the like impious opinions, designs and intentions unto all that are called by that name ; althouo-h their souls abhor the very memory of such impious doctrines, and their bloody consequences. That such evil opinions and practices are no natural or necessary concomitants or con- sequences of the doctrine about baptism, nor of any possible connexion with it, is easy to be discerned ; yet bv the like HVMDLE APOLOGY. 245 mistake we now sufier under jealousies, through the wicked treason, rebellion and murder, of a few heady and dis- tempered persons, pretending to introduce a civil and temporal reign and government of Jesus Christ by their swords, and to subvert all civil government and authority. Yet we cannot imagine a reason why their bloody ten cuts, and tragical actings, should reflect upon those of our per- suasion, the persons not being of our belief or practice about baptism ; but, to the best of our information, they were all (except one) assertors of infant baptism, and never had communion with us in our assemblies." Nor hath there been any correspondence or converse between us ; but contrary- wise, in their meetings they have inveighed bitterly against us, as worshippers of the beast, because of our constant declaring against their conceited, wild interpretations of dark prophecies, and enthusiastical impulses, and professed and practised our duty of subjection to the civil magistracy. And it is notoriously known, the very same persons, or at least the leaders, and the most of them, formerly advanced their pretended standard of Jesus Christ, as much against us as against any others. And it is as publicly known, that even in this their rebellion, such of us as were called there- unto (which were many) were ready to hazard our lives to suppress them. And if such a constant continued opposition unto the impious tenents and practices of these persons, both in our doctrine and lives, will not be esteemed a pregnant and cogent evidence of our unspotted innocence from their treason and rebellion, and satisfy every man that our souls never entered into their secrets, we can only appeal to the all-seeing God, the Judo-e of all the earth, to vindicate us in his righteous » [This settles the questiou as to affair, A'ennci- and his party were the part bnjitists had in tins unhappy iudopcndeut".] 346 PUBLIC DOCU»CENTS. judgment, who we are assured will judge and do right (Gen. xviii. 25). In whose presence we protest that we neither had the least foreknowledge of the said late treasonable in- surrection, nor did any of us in any kind or degree whatsoever, directly, or indirectly, contrive, promote, assist, abet, or approve the same ; but do esteem it our duty to God, to his majesty, and to our neighboui", not only to be obedient, but also to use our utmost industry to prevent all such treasons, murders, and rebellions, and to use, in all our assemblies, con- stant prayers and supplications for his majesty. Wherefore we humbly beseech his majesty, and desire all our fellow subjects, that our actions, doctrines, and lives may be the only glasses through which -they will look into our hearts, and pass judgment upon us, and that the tenents or opinions of others, either in this or foreign kingdoms, may not be imputed to us, when our doctrines and lives do declare our abhorrency of them ; we, believing that Jesus Christ himself, his apostles, and the Christian religion, did consist with and obey the imperial government that then was in the world, and that we ought to obey his majesty, not only for wrath but for conscience' sake. We desire therefore that it may be considered without pre- judice, whether our persuasion in the matter of baptism hath any connexion with these doctrines against government, or whether these can be the probable consequences or inferences from our doctrine concerning baptism. And we pray that it may be seriously considered, whether it be rational, just, or Christian, to impute all the errors and wickedness of any sect of Christians in one age or country to the persons of another age and country, called by the name of the former; especially when these errors or impieties gave not the name to the sect (as in our case), nor can be reasonably supposed to be the consequences of that opinion from whence the sect had its denomination. irUMKLE APOLOGY. 347 It would not be holden just to aver every protestant to believe consubstantiation, or absolute predestination and reprobation, because Luther was zealous in the one and Calvin in the other; why therefore should the errors and impieties of others be imputed to us, whilst we earnestly con- tend against them ? And as to our doctrine of baptism, we hope every Christian that hath searched the scriptures know- eth, that there wants not so much evidence, at least for our opinion and practice, as Christian charity may well allow, though in some men's judgments we should be esteemed mis- taken; and it will be easily granted by the learned that there is no impiety in our doctrine of baptism, nor opposition to civil government or his majesty's authority ; neither can the injury of our neighbour be the natural consequence of it. And therefore we humbly hope that the Omnipotent Power of heaven and earth will so dispose his majesty and his people's hearts, that we may worship God in peace and freedom, according to the faith we have received, living a peaceable and quiet life in all godliness and honesty. Postscript. That it may yet more fully appear that our principles suggested in this apology about subjection to magistracy and government, against the contrary opinions and practices, are . not new, much less proceeding from us upon the successless- ness of this tragical enterprise, we have thought fit herewith to publish an apology of our ancient and constant principles, presented Avith our humble petition to the king's most excellent majesty, some months since, in the year 1660.9 [This renders it probable that them to Charles II., in July of the the Humble Apology was dra\vn up previous year. Tracts on Lib. o by the Lincolnshire baptists. The Con., p. 291. See before, p. 107.] nest succeeding was presented by 348 PUBLIC DOCUMENTS. William IviCfen, Joliii Batty, Thomas Coo]»er. Johu Peai'son, Hem-y Hills, Edward Harrison, Samuel Tull, John Cox, Jam. Knight, Ohr. Blackwood, Edward Roberts, John Man, Z. Worth, Jolm Rix, John Clayton, Henry Den, Thomas Lamb, Philip Travors, Thomas Penson, Fi'an. Smith. John Gosnold, ITio. BromhaU, Samuel Stanton, John Browning, Thomas Lathwel. John SpQsbery, Jer. Zanchy, Joseph Simpson. Daniel Royee, Mark Cam. A71 apology of some called anabaptists, in and about the city of London, in behalf of themselves and others of the same judg- ment vnth them. Forasmuch as it hath been our portion all along to suffer, not only some hard things in many of our persons, but also very much in our reputations, through the unjust aspersions and calumnies of our adversaries, and such who, though they daily behold our inoffensive conversation, and do or may know our faith and doctrine, will not yet be delivered from those groundless and injurious reports, which they have, without proofj concerning thmgs or persons, taken up; but contrarywise continue, in press, pulpit, and common discourse, industriously to divulge things tending to our defamation, and more especially for that purpose watching the opportunity of all revolutions and changes of persons exercised in govern- ment, which hath often happened in these nations of late vcar? : - IIUMBia; APOLOGY. 349 And inasmuch as the design of our adversaries therein hath appeared to be the rendering of us obnoxious to those that have had most power in their hand to offend and harm us, and have for that purpose invented such calumnies as might best accomplish that design, which although they have been various, and sometimes manifestly cross and contra- dictory one to another, yet having no other ground (that we know of) than the forementioned evil purpose; they have therefore botli one and other, even all of them, been generally accompanied with the charge of disobedience to magistracy and civil government : — We have therefore been necessitated (as alterations in government have happened) to renew our vindications in this public manner, having very seldom opportunity otherwise to inform either magistrates or people of the injuries done unto us, and, which is much more, to the truth we do profess. And in this present conjuncture of affairs, that the misrepresenta- , tion of us, either formerly or now, may not take impression upon any to the damage of us and our profession, we have thought it requisite not to bring to light any new matter, but only to extract out of our former Confessions of Faith and declarations, our constant principles, to which we have been (and shall always endeavour, the Lord assisting us, that our practice may still be) conformable in this great point concerning magistracy and civil government, as by these extracts following may appear. " That civil magistracy is an ordinance of God, set up by him for the punishment of evil doers, and for the praise of them that do well ; and that in all lawful things commanded by them, subjection ought to be given by us in the Lord, not only for wrath but for conscience' sake ; and that we are to make supplications and prayers for kings, and all that are 350 PT"KLI€ DOCUMENTS. in authority, that under them we may live a peaceable and quiet life in all godliness and honestj'.'^ " We who are falsely called anabaptists, being as ready to obey our civil magistrates as to profess our subjection to them in all lawful commands, whatever is preached or printed of us by any to the contrary, and whosoever have or shall - accuse us, either to the magistrates or to the common people, that we will not obey authority, do falsely accuse us.' " And however it be a thing very desirable to godly men to have such to be their governors as fear the Lord, inasmuch as together with their moral principles, they are under more solemn bands of engagement as Christians to execute judo-- ment and justice, and faithfully to discharge their trust ; and inasmuch, also, as they will be more ready to protect godly men which generally are the hated of the world, and to pro- pagate the gospel in their territories, than other men will be; yet whatever the magistrate is in point of religion, he is to be reverenced and obeyed in all those commands of his which do not entrench upon or rise up in opposition to the commands of God.* " And we do freely acknowledge that kingly government, established, guided, and bounded by just and wholesome laws, is both allowed by God, and a good accommodation to men. " That all people in every nation, as well members of churches as others, ought for conscience' sake to honour such as by the wise-disposing providence of God are their rulers and are to submit to the civil commands, not only of such rulers as are faithful, but even to infidels.' ''■ Confession of Faith of those " Declaration by the several Con- churches in Loudon, which are com- gi-egational societies in and about the raonly, though unjustly, called Ana- city of London, in way of vindication baptists, Art. 47. Printed in the of themselves touching liberty, magis- several years, 1651, 1646, 1644, &c. tracy, &c. Printed 1647, p. 7' s. [See before, p. 11 ] 3 and 4. [See before, p. 273.] ^ Declaration concerning a public ^ Declaration of divers Elders and dispute printed in the year ] 64.'), p. 4. Brethren of Congregational Societies HUMBLE APOLOGY. 351 " Although we cannot answer in justification of every individual person that is of our profession in matters of religion, no more than our Christian friends of other persua- sions can do in behalf of all of their persuasions, yet we can say this, and prove it to all the world, that it hath been our profession, and is our real practice, to be obedient to magis- tracy in all things civil, and willing to live peaceably under the government established in this nation : for we do believe and declare magistracy to be an ordinance of God, and ought to be obeyed in all lawful things."^ ' These things we have herein recited, the rather because that such judgment as shall be made by any concerning us may be fairly and duly taken and calculated from our own writings, and not from the aspersions unjustly cast upon us| by such who have not only rendered many guilty for the offence' sake of some one person, but also called others after] the same name given to us, with whom we have had or held no correspondency or agreement: endeavouring to blemish our profession, by charging the whole party, not only with the guilt of many strange unsound opinions, such as were never received or allowed by them, but also with manyj actions wherein they have been least of all, if at aU, con- cerned. And as for those things wherein any of us, or other ' of our judgment have been actually concerned, we hope it hath proceeded from a due regard to those invariable rules o-iven in the holy scripture for the ordering our conversation with respect unto magistracy, according to the best judgment could be made of them, and pursuant thereunto : done in observance of those public edicts and declarations, whereunto in and about the city of London, the about the city of London, Decemb. the 10th of Nov. 1651. 12, 1659. The answer to the first " Declaration of several of the Crimination, people called Anabapti.=>t3 in and uo'J ruBLic DOCUMEjrre. the most universal obedience und constant adliercncc liath been required bj those tliat have had the power over us, and who have admitted us the least of any people to dispute the reason of governments and laws. And for that the subjection yielded by us to the powers that have been over us, hath proceeded from a conscience not daring to disobey, unless in such things which we could not understand to be lawful, and the affections that have been manifested therein have arisen from the enjoyment of that due liberty and protection which we have had in matters of religion; we do hope and desire that none of us upon the re-establishment of the present government, shall now be {adjudged criminal by our present governors, but that we imay, notwithstanding, reap the benefit of that favour that I hath been declared and tendered by the king's majesty, and be protected from all injury and violence whatsoever, equally I with others his majesty's subjects, in the quiet and peaceable lenjoyment of our religious and civil rights and liberties; we desiring and endeavouring to behave ourselves in all good conscience towards God and man, remembering that rule of jo\}T Lord, that we are to render unto Ccesar the things which are Casar's, and to God the things which are God's ; and that I we, as well as rulers, must certainly at the great day be accountable to the just and righteous Judge of all the earth, for all our doings. THE SECOND HUMBLE ADDRESS OF THOSE WHO AKE CALLED ANABAPTISTS/ In the county of Lincoln. Presented to His Majestj^, Charles the Second, King of England, Scotland, France, and Ireland, &c. Mat it please tour majestt. Once more to permit your distressed (yet faithful) subjects to spread their innocency and sorrow of heart before you ; it seems it must needs be that offences do or shall come, but the woe is deservedly their portion (only) by whom the offence cometh ; and were it not that we had that strong fort, innocency, to fly unto, we durst not in this miserable day once dare to make our address unto you. But having this to support us in this tottering age, we therefore boldly (yet in all humility) solemnly declare, that notwithstanding the many wicked practices spoken of or done against your majesty and government, yet are our hearts and hands clean and pure herefrom, as utterly abomi- nable, and held in great detestation in our judgments and principles, as is further declared by our address formerly ; according to which former address,^ we hold ourselves bound; as also by your great favours to us vouchsafed, when by your princely favour permitted to be present with yourself, ' [PresentedJanuaryl6th,1660 — 61. " [The address presented iu July It Wiva afterwards published as a broad- prCTious, at the same time with their sheet.'l ' confession of faith.] A A 354 punijc Docu\rENTS. we are abundantly engaged ; so have we made it, and so shall we make it (the God of heaven and earth assisting us) our great care to discharge our duties in every respect to the utmost of our ability, as becomes the children of God and subjects to the king. We have not wanted hearty desires to signify our opinions and resolutions touching the government of this nation, and of our deportment under the same, by a general agi-eement of all our brethren, in the same form of profession with us, but have been prevented partly by the unseasonableness of the time ; and partly by the negligence of some betrusted in the business ; and partly by the unhappy tumults and disturb- ances, made and committed by men who fear not to speak evil of dignities ; and lastly, we are altogether incapacitated for such an undertaking by your majesty's late proclamation,^ prohibiting all meetings of such as are denominated ana- baptists. O king, we must confess there is too notorious cause for severity, since clemency and mercy hath been abused ; but the abusers of mercy ought (only) to feel the smart of their misdoings. But, oh ! let the innocent have the reward of their innocency, even the continuation of mercy, so will your throne be established in righteousness. When we read your letter from Breda, and the revival thereof in your Declara- tion for ecclesiastical affairs ;^ and your princely promises to us, -when by your clemency permitted to be present with yourself: — O king, when we remember these things, we are ready to say (not, why was the king's proclamation so hasty, but), why was the extension thereof so large? Shall the ' [This proclamation was published worshipping God, except it be in on the day of Venner's arrest. Ana- some parochial edifice. Persons were baptists, quakers, and fifth monarchy allowed to worship in their bwn men were forbidden to assemble or private houses. Neal, iii. 73.1 meet together under pretence of ' [See Neal, iii. 57.] SECOND mniBLE ADDRESS. 355 righteous sufFer with the wicked ? God forbid. Must your peaceable subjects be judged rioters, whilst many unpeace- able ones (such as swearers and drunkards) are freed from that judgment ? The Lord will not accompany such pro- ceedings. Our humble requests from these premises are, that there may be a righteous distinction in the administration of punishment ; lest the cries of the innocent and their ruined families come up before the Lord, whilst your prisons are filled with such as whose prayers have come up to the throne of grace on your majesty's behalf, and can approve their hearts to the Lord in respect of loyalty and good fidelity to your majesty, and the civil government of this nation under your hands. It is indeed matter of sorrow, to see how the notorious profane do rejoice at the present sufierings of the innocent ; who therefore are occasioned to pray, that wisdom may be given from God unto your majesty to execute the law justly, punishing the evil doer, and preserving all that do well. But to avoid j^rolixity, O king, be pleased to know, that your poor subjects dare not refuse their innocent meetings, wherein their work is sincerely to worship God, and pray for your majesty and for all men, as in duty they are bound ; seeino- the authority by which they are dehorted from the neglect of their assemblies (Heb. x. 25), is greater than any whereby your majesty can enjoin the neglect thereof. And, therefore, though it cost us the loss of all that we have and arc, as to things of an outward consideration, yet dare we not shrink from so great a loss. Yet are we resolved in the strength of God, not to rebel ao-ainst any of your majesty's commands ; but in case we cannot conscionabiy act, we humbly purpose and heartily pray for strength to suffer patiently and joyfully ; and there- fore cheerfully and faithfully do once more subscribe our 356 rUBLlC DOCXJMENTS. selves, your huinble and obedient, though as at this instant your imprisoned and distressed subjects and petitioners, Thomas Grentham, Wai. Burton, Joliu Thorpe, Rich. Crawforth, Valentine James, Richard Drewry, John Kelsay, John Skiritt, John Lupton, John Watts, Edward Sharpe, Charles Warwike, WUL Zillye, John Allen, Robert Drewry, Christoph. Ordiug, Rich. Hanson, John Green, Will. Pidgeon, Daniel Cheeaemau, Ralph James, Rob. Cox, Thomas Bampton, John Norfolke, Richard Mathin, WiU. Smith, Tho. Eeuolds, Rich. Wray, Will. Heart, Tho. Muksworth. Subscribed in behalf of themselves, and the several congre- gations unto which they arc related in the county of Lincoln. LOIS^DON : Printed by Simon Dover, in Martins near Alderpgate, 1660. TO- THE KING OF THESE NATIONS, THE HUMBLE REPRESENTATION Of several Societies, commonly called by the name of ANABAPTISTS, Where hi short they declare their Innocency, Suiferings, Desires, and Eesolutious. Whereas, () King, there have of late years happened in this nation many strange changes and revolutions, to the great amazement of the sons . of men, by which most men of all ranks and qualities have been subject to err, from which we cannot altogether acquit ourselves ; yet this we can boldly say, that- although some of us were in arms under the former powers, our end was not the destruction of men's lives, but rather their preservation, and to prevent the rude multitude of their designs, which were no other than ruin and -desolation where they did prevail ; this, we say, was our end, whatsoever our adversaries do say to our i-eproach. And whereas, O King, there have (within these few days) been in the city of London very strange and unheard of actions, to the wounding of our souls, we have been so far from designing or acting therein that envy itself cannot justly charge us. Nevertheless, such is the portion of many of us, to be taken out of our houses, and from our em- ployments, beaten and abused in the streets by the rude multitude, haled before the justices and other officers, and = [From a. broad sheet. The subscribers to this appeal were general baptists.] 358 I'UBLIC DOCUME>rTS. then, having nothing to charge us with, they put us to the oath, or oaths, and upon refusal (though Christ hath pro- hibited swearing at all, especially any promissoi:;^' oath), are we sent to prison, to the impoverishing and ruin of us, our wives, and children ; which opposition against swearing now in us, is no more than what the greatest part of us were sigainst under the former powers. But that which wounds us most, O king, is the late proclamation, wherein there is no difference made, but as though'all were alike in the transgression, and had all made an ill use of thine indulgence and forfeited our liberty ; which doth strengthen the rude multitude in their con- fidence that we are guilty of some pernicious design against thee, O king, and the nation. Which false reports greatly obstruct our liberty to meet together to pray and edify one another; as also to meet in our own houses to pray one with another, which we humbly conceive is our right as men and Christians ; which, if we do, we are liable to be destroyed by the rude multitude, though we cannot be charged with any fact. Thus the guiltless suffer with the guilty, which is averse to the mind of the holy and just God. And although our consciences do bear us witness that wc have not abused our liberty, by any ill use that we have made of thine indulgence, and that thy proclamation (pro- hibiting our assembling together after our usual manner) does not properly reach us, but that we ought to have had the benefit of thy former declaration, ascertaining our Christian freedom ; yet, forasmuch as the late disturbance might minister cause of jealousy, being done by some that pretended separation, but not of our faith or practice, such of us as have not been imprisoned have, since thy proclama- tion was extant, forborne to meet, lest it should be judged contempt of authority ; so willing we are to prevent all grounds of fear ; and we do challenge the world to come THi; HUMBLE KEPRESEXTATION. 359 forth and show wherein we have offended thee, that we are thus dealt with ; for we can truly say with the servant of God of old, that innocency is found in us, and against thee, O king, have we done no harm. Wherefore, O king, pur humble desire is, that thou wouldst seriously weigh our innocency and sufferings, with our humble desires, as also our forbearance to assemble (lest it should be deemed contempt), until we had cleared our innocency unto thee, which here (in the fear of the all-seeing God) we have done ; and if, notwithstanding our just complaint, thine ears be shut against our cry, and will not release the innocent out of prison, nor restore our Christian liberty, which of late we have been deprived of without just cause, but upon mis- information, and shall still be liable to be destroyed by the rude multitude, that then we shall cast all our care upon our God, and assemble together to pray, and build up one another in the things of our holy God, as he hath commanded us ; leaving thee, O ting, and all the world to judge, whether we ought not to obey God rather than man. And if for serving our God thou sufferest us to be destroyed, we shall commit our righteous cause to Him that judgeth righteously, and hath said. Vengeance is mine, and I will repay it, Rom. xii. 19. In the meantime we shall patiently wait, and mightily cry unto the Lord, until he redeems [us] from the hands of our op- pressors ; for the Lord hath said. He will encamp about his home, and no oppressors shall pass through them any more ; for now have I seen with mine own eyes, saith the Lord, Zech. ix. 8. All which, O king, we shall commit to thy consideration, and shall be subject to thee in civil things for conscience' sake ; and subscribe our names for ourselves, and the congregation to which we do belong: — ^ ' [Mr. Jonathan Jenuings was pastor Sam. Loveday presided over a churcb of a church in WTiite's Alley. Mr. meeting on Tower HilL It is probable 3G0 runijo DOCxrMENTS. Thomas Perrott, Jonathan Jenings, Christopher Miles, Thomas Smith, William Paine, Richard Newberry, Richard Day, William Goodman, Samuel Hodgkin, Henry Brown, Walter Pen, John Hamersly, Thomas Hayns, Samuel Fulcher, William Beacav, John Maubee, Samuel Loveday, Thomas Earner, John Michel, Humphrey Jones, Thomas Orchard, Hugh Boulton, Thomas Clark, Richard Taylor, Robert Parker, John Parker. POSTSCRIPT. Let none judge oi" think amiss that we do not give the king those titles that are commonly given unto him ; for it is not out of any disrespect to his person, being not willing to deny him anything that is given him of God: and for these words, thee, thou, and thine, we find in scripture to be given to the greatest and best of men that were in authority, as also to God himself, and to our Lord Jesus Christ. London, Printed in the Year, 1660. that they regarded themselves but as one congregation, as we know that Mr. Jennings was accustomed oc- casionally to preach for Mr. Loveday. Taylor's Gen. Bap., i. 250, 252, 332.] HADDON, mtOTHBl\S, AND CO., PKTNTRRS, CA6TI.K STRRkT, FrNSnURY.